QUEED HENRY SYDNOR HARRISON s^ S CORNELL UNIVERSITY LIBRARY *'''tui . ^^ £ ' /2r^ / «^ .■^%-*^if Cornell University Library PS 3515.A776Q3 1911 Queed :a novel /by Henry Sydnor Harrison 3 1924 022 462 745 The original of tliis book is in tine Cornell University Library. There are no known copyright restrictions in the United States on the use of the text. http://www.archive.org/details/cu31924022462745 QUE ED H l!'l ■ ' ■ ' I ■ I Ir ■, .,r!'l I II I 'l I I' -r-H^lil (.p. 159) MR. QUEED, YOU ARE AFFLICTED WITH A FATAL MALADY. YOUR COSMOS IS ALL EGO OUEED A NOVEL BY HENRY SYDNOR HARRISON WITH A FRONTISPIECE BY R. M. CROSBY NEW YORK GROSSET & DUNLAP PUBLISHERS COPYRIGHT, J9II, BY HBNRY SYDNOR HARRISOW ALL RIGHTS RESERVBD TO MV MOTHER CONTENTS I First Meeting between a Citizen in Spectacles and the Great Pleasure-Dog Behemoth; also of Charles Gardiner West, a Personage at Thirty 3 II Mrs. Paynter's Boarding-House: which was not founded as an Eleemosynary Institution I4 III Encounter between Charlotte Lee Weyland, a Landlady's Agent, and Doctor Queed, a Young Man who would n't pay his Board .25 IV Relating how Two Stars in their Courses fought for Mr. Queed; and how he accepted Remunerative Employment under Colonel Cowles, the Military Political Economist 4<^ V Selections from Contemporary Opinions of Mr. Queed; also con- cerning Henry G. Surface, his Life and Deeds; of Fifi, the Landlady's Daughter, and how she happened to look up Al- truism in the Dictionary 51 VI Autobiographical Data imparted, for Sound Business Reasons, to a Landlady's Agent; of the Agent's Other Title, etc. ... 64 VII In which an Assistant Editor, experiencing the Common Desire to thrash a Proof-Reader, makes a Humiliating Discovery; and of how Trainer Klinker gets a Pupil the Same Evening . 79 VIII Formal Invitation to Fifi to share Queed's Dining-Room (pro- vided it is very cold upstairs); and First Outrage upon the Sacred Schedule of Hours 93 viii CONTENTS IX 0/ Charles Gardiner West, President-Elecl of Blaines College, and his Ladies Fair: all in Mr. West's Lighter Manner. . .104 X Of Fiji en Friendship, and who would he sorry if Queed died; of Queed' s Mad Impulse, sternly overcome; of his Indignant Call upon Nicolovius, the Old Professor 114 XI Concerning a Plan to make a Small Gift to a Fellow-Boarder, and what it led to in the Way of Calls; also touching upon Mr. Queed' s Dismissal from the Post, and the Generous Re- solve of the Young Lady, Charles Weyland 127 XII More Consequences of the Plan about the Gift, and of how Mr. Queed drinks his Medicine like a Man; Fiji on Men, and how they do; Second Corruption of the Sacred Schedule . .137 XIII "Taking the Little Doctor Down a Peg or Two": as performed for the First and Only Time by Sharlee Weyland . . . .146 XIV In which Klinker quotes Scripture, and Queed has helped Fiji with her Lessons for the Last Time 163 XV In a Country Churchyard, and afterwards; of Friends: how they take your Time while they live, and then die, upsetting your Evening's Work; and what Buck Klinker saw in the Scripto- rium at 2 a. m 174 XVI Triumphal Return of Charles Gardiner West from the Old World; and of hoibthe Other World had wagged in his A bsence . . '. 1 86 XVII A Remeeting in a Cemetery: the Unglassed Queed who loafed on Rustic Bridges; of the Consequences of faiUng to tell a Lady that you hope to see her again soon 200 CONTENTS ix XVIII Of President West of Old Blaines College, his Trustees and his Troubles; his Firmness in the Brown- Jones Hazing Incident so misconstrued by Malicious Asses; his Article for the Post, and why it was never printed: all ending in West's Profound Dissatisfaction with the Rewards of Patriotism 216 XIX The Little House on Duke of Gloucester Street; and the Beginning of Various Feelings, Sensibilities, and Attitudes between two Lonely Men 239 XX Meeting of the Post Directors to elect a Successor to Colonel Cowles; Charles Gardiner West's Sensible Remarks on Mr. Queed; Mr. West's Resignation from Old Blaines College, and New Con- secration to the Uplift ^ 248 XXI Queed sits on the Steps with Sharlee, and sees Some Old Soldiers go marching by 257 XXII In which Professor Nicolovius drops a Letter on the Floor, and . Queed conjectures that Happiness sometimes comes to Men wearing a Strange Face 274 XXI II Of the Bill for the Reformatory, and its Critical Situation; of West's Second Disappointment with the Rewards of Patriot- ism; of the Consolation he found in the Most Charming Re- solve in the World 290 XXIV Sharlee' s Parlor on Another Evening; how One Caller outsat Two, and why; also, how Sharlee looked in her Mirror for a Long Time, and why 300 XXV Recording a Discussion about the Reformatory between Editor West and his Dog-like Admirer, the City Boss; and a Briefer Conversation between West and Prof. Nicolovius' s Boarder . 312 X CONTENTS XXVI In which Queed forces the Old Professor's Hand, and the Old Pro- fessor takes to his Bed 33» XXVII Sharlee Weyland reads the Morning Post; of Rev. Mr. Dayne's Fight atEphesus and the Telephone Message that never came; of the Editor's Comment upon the Assistant Editor's Resigna- tion, which perhaps lacked Clarity; and of how Eight Men elect a Mayor 345 XXVIII How Words can he like Blows, and Blue Eyes stab deep; how Queed sits by a Bedside and reviews his Life; and how a Thought leaps at him and will not down 363. XXIX In which Queed's Shoulders can bear One Man's Roguery and Another's Dishonor, and of what these Fardels cost him: how for the Second Time in his Life he stays out of Bed to think . . 375. XXX Death of the Old Professor, and how Queed finds that his List of Friends has grown; a Last Will and Testament; Exchange of Letters among Prominent Attorneys, which unhappily proves futile 387 XXXI God moves in a Mysterious Way : how the finished Miss Avery appears as the Instrument of Providence ; how Sharlee sees her Idol of Many Years go toppling in the Dust, and how it is her Turn to meditate in the Still Watches 397 XXXII Second Meeting between a Citizen and the Great Pleasure-Dog Behemoth, involving Plans for Two New Homes 416 QUEED QUEED I First Meeting between a Citizen in Spectacles and the Great Pleasure-Dog Behemoth; also of Charles Gardiner West, a Personage at Thirty. IT was five of a November afternoon, crisp and sharp, and already running into dusk. Down the street came a girl and a dog, rather a small girl and quite a behe- mothian dog. If she had been a shade smaller, or he a shade more behemothian, the thing would have approached a parody on one's settled idea of a girl and a dog. She had enough height to save that, but it was the narrowest sort of squeak.' The dog was of the breed which are said to come trotting into Alpine monasteries of a winter's night with fat Ameri- can travelers in their mouths, frozen stiff. He was extremely large for his age, whatever that was. On the other hand, the girl was small for her age, which was twenty-four next month; not so much short, you understand, for she was of a reasonable height, as of a dainty slimness, a certain ex- quisite reticence of the flesh. She had cares and duties and even sober-sided responsibilities in this world, beyond the usual run of girls. Yet her hat was decidedly of the mode that year; her suit was smartly and engagingly cut; her furs were glossy and black and big. Her face, it may be said here as well as later, had in its time given pleasure to the male sex, and some food for critical conversation to the female. A good many of the young men whom she met along the way this afternoon appeared distinctly pleased to speak to her. ^ OUEED The girl was Sharlee Weyland, and Sharlee was the short for Charlotte Lee, as invented by herself some score of years before. One baby-name in a hundred sticks through a life- time, and hers was the one in that particular hundred. Of the young men along the way, one was so lucky as to catch her eye through a large plate-glass window. It was Semple and West's window, the ground-floor one in the great new Commonwealth Building, of which the town is rightly so proud, and the young man was no other than West, Charles Gardiner himself. A smile warmed his good-looking face when he met the eye of the girl and the dog; he waved a hand at them. That done, he immediately vanished from the window and reached for his hat and coat; gave hurried directions to a clerk and a stenographer; and sallying forth, overtook the pair before they had reached the next corner. "Everything's topsy-turvy," said he, coming alongside. "Here you are frivolously walking downtown with a dog. Usually at this time you are most earnestly walking up- town, and not a sign of a dog as far as the eye can see. What on earth's happened?" " Oh, how do you do? " said she, apparently not displeased to find herself thus surprised from the rear. "I too have a mad kind of feeling, as though the world had gone upside down. Don't be ajnazed if I suddenly clutch out at you to keep from falling. But the name of it — of this feeling — is having a holiday. Mr. Dayne went to New York at 12.20." "Ah, I see. When the cat's away?" "Not at all. I am taking this richly earned vacation by his express command. " "In that case, why mightn't we turn about and go a real walk — cease picking our way through the noisome hum of commerce and set brisk evening faces toward the open road — and all that? You and I and the dog. What is his * name? Rollo, I suppose?" "RoUo! No! OrTrayorFido, either! His name is Bee, short for Behemoth — and I think that a very captivating OUEED 3 little name, don't you? His old name, the one I bought him by, was Fred — Fredl — but already he answers to the pretty name of Bee as though he were born to it. Watch." She pursed her lips and gave a whistle, unexpectedly loud and clear. "Here, Bee, here! Here, sir! Look, look. He turned around right away/" West laughed. "Wonderfully gifted dog. But I believe you mentioned taking a walk in the November air. I can only say that physicians strongly recommend it, valetudi- narians swear by it — " "Oh — if I only could! — but I simply cannot think of it. Do you know, I never have a holiday without wondering how on earth I could have gotten on another day without it. You can't imagine what loads of things I 've done since two o'clock, and loads remain. The very worst job of them all still hangs by a hair over my head. I must cross here." West said that evidently her conception of a holiday was badly mixed. As they walked he paid for her society by incessantly taking off his hat; nearly everybody they met spoke to them, many more to him than to her. Though both of them had been born in that city and grown up with it, the girl had only lately come to know West well, and she did not know him very well now. All the years hitherto she had joined in the general admiration of him shyly and from a distance, the pretty waiting-lady's attitude toward the dazzling young crown prince. She was observant, and so she could not fail to observe now the cordiality with which people of all sorts saluted him, the touch of deference in the greeting of not a few. He was scarcely thirty, but it would have been clear to a duller eye that he was already some- thing of a personage. Yet he held no public office, nor were his daily walks the walks of philanthropic labor for the com- mon good. In fact Semple & West's was merely a brokerage establishment, which was understood to be cleaning up a tolerable lot of money per annum. They stood on the corner, waiting for a convenient chance to cross, and West looked at her as at one whom it was 6 OUEED pleasant to rest one's eyes upon. She drew his attention to their humming environment. For a city of that size the Hfe and bustle here were, indeed, such as to take the eye. Trolley cars clanged by in a tireless procession; trucks were rounding up for stable and for bed ; delivery wagons whizzed corners and bumped on among them; now and then a chauffeur honked by, grim eyes roving for the un- wary pedestrian. On both sides of the street the homeward march of tired humans was already forming and quick- ening. " Heigho ! We 're living in an interesting time, you and I," said West. "It isn't every generation that can watch its old town change into a metropolis right under its eyes." "I remember," saidshe, "when itwas an exciting thing to see anybody on the street you did n't know. You went home and told the family about it, and very likely counted the spoons next morning. The city seemed to belong to us then. And now — look. Everywhere new kings that know not Joseph. Bee!" "It's the law of life; the old order changeth." He turned and looked along the street, into the many faces of the home- ward bound. "The eternal mystery of the people. . . . Don't you like to look at their faces and wonder what they 're all doing and thinking and hoping and dreaming to make out of their lives?" "Don't you think they're all hoping and dreaming just one thing? — how to make more money than they're mak- ing at present? All over the world," said Miss Weyland, "bright young men lie awake at night, thinking up odd, ingenious ways to take other people's money away frofti them. These young men are the spirit of America. We're having an irruption of them here now ... the Goths sack- ing the sacred city." "Clever rascals they are too. I," said West, "belong to the other group. I sleep of nights and wake up in the morn- ing to have your bright young Goths take my money away from me." OUEED 7 He laughed and continued: "Little Bobby Smythe, who used to live here, was in my office the other day. I was complimenting him on the prosperity of the plumbers' supply manufacture — for such is his mundane occupation, in Schenectady, N. Y. Bobby said that plumbers' supplies were all well enough, but he made his real money from an interesting device of his own. There is a lot of building going on in his neighborhood, it seems, and it occurred to him to send around to the various owners and offer his pri- vate watchman to guard the loose building materials at night. This for the very reasonable price of $3.50 a week. It went like hot cakes. ' But,' said I, ' surely your one watch- man can't look after thirty-seven different places.' 'No,' said Bobby, 'but they think he does.' I laughed and com- mended his ingenuity. 'But the best part of the joke,' said he, 'is that / have n't got any watchman at all.' " Sharlee Weyland laughed gayly. " Bobby could stand for the portrait of young America." "You've been sitting at the feet of a staunch old Tory Gamaliel named Colonel Cowles. I can see that. Ah, me! My garrulity has cost us a splendid chance to cross. What are all these dreadful things you have still left to do on your so-called holiday?" "Well," said she, "first I'm going to Saltman's to buy stationery. Boxes and boxes of it, for the Department. Bee! Come here, sir! Look how fat this purse is. I 'm going to spend all of that. Bee! I wish I had put him to leash. He's going to hurt himself in a minute — you see! — " "l!)on't you think he's much more likely to hurt some- body else? For a guess, that queer-looking little citizen in spectacles over the way, who so evidently does n't know where he is at." "Oh, do you think so? — Bee! . . . Then, after station- ery, comes the disagreeable thing, and yet interesting too. I have to go to my Aunt Jennie's, dunning." "You are compelled to dun your Aunt Jennie?" She laughed. "No — dun for her, because she's too 8 OUEED tender-hearted to do it herself. There's a man there who won't pay his board. Bee! Bee! — BEE! — O heavens — It's happened!" And, too quick for West, she was gone into the mel6e, which immediately closed in behind her, barricading him away. What had happened was a small tragedy in its way. The little citizen in spectacles, who had been standing on the opposite corner vacantly eating an apple out of a paper bag, had unwisely chosen his moment to try the cross- ing. He was evidently an indoors sort of man and no shakes at crossing streets, owing to the introspective nature of his mind. A grocery wagon shaved him by an inch. It was doing things to the speed-limit, this wagon, because a dashing police patrol was close behind, treading on its tail and in- dignantly clanging it to turn out, which it could not pos- sibly do. To avoid erasing the little citizen, the patrol man had to pull sharply out; and this manoeuvre, as Fate had written it, brought him full upon the great dog Behemoth, who, having slipped across the tracks, stood gravely wait- ing for the flying wagon to pass. Thus it became a clear case of sauve qui pent, and the devil take the hindermost. There was nothing in the world for Behemoth to do but wildly leap under the hoofs for his life. This he did success- fully. But on the other side he met the spectacled citizen full and fair, and down they went together with a thud. The little man came promptly to a sitting posture and took stock of the wreck. His hat he could not see anywhere, the reason being that he was sitting on it. The paper bag, of course, had burst; some of the apples had rolled to amaz- mg distances, and newsboys, entire strangers to the fallen gentleman, were eating them with cries of pleasure. This he saw m one pained glance. But on the very heels of the dog, It seemed, came hurrying a girl with marks of great anxiety on her face. "Can you possibly forgive him? That fire-alarm thing scared him crazy- he's usually so good! You are n't hurt, are you.-' 1 do hope so much that you are n't?" QUEED 9 The young man, sitting calmly in the street, glanced up at Miss Weyland with no sign of interest. " I have no complaint to make," he answered, precisely; " though the loss of my fruit seems unfortunate, to say the least of it." "I know! The way they fell on them," she answered, as self-unconscious as he — "quite as though you had offered to treat! I 'm very much mortified — But — are you hurt? I thought for a minute that the cod cart was going right over you." A crowd had sprung up in a wink; a circle of interested faces watching the unembarrassed girl apologizing to the studious-looking little man who sat so calmly upon his hat in the middle of the street. Meantime all traffic on that side was hopelessly blocked. Swearing truck drivers stood up on their seats from a block away to see what had halted the procession. "But what is the object of a dog like that?" inquired the man ruminatively. "What good is he? What is he for?" "Why — why — why," said she, looking ready to laugh — "he's not a utilitarian dog at all, you see! He's a pleas- ure-dog, you know — just a big, beautiful dog to give pleasure! — " "The pleasure he has given me," said the man, gravely producing his derby from beneath him and methodically undenting it, "is negligible. I may say non-existent." From somewhere rose a hoarse titter. The girl glanced up, and for the first time became aware that her position was somewhat unconventional. A very faint color sprang into her cheeks, but she was not the kind to retreat in dis- order. West dodged through the blockade in time to hear her say with a final, smiling bow: "I'm so glad you aren't hurt, believe me . . . And if my dog has given you no pleasure, you may like to think that you have given him a great deal." A little flushed but not defeated, her gloved hand knotted in Behemoth's gigantic scruff, she moved away, resigning the lo OUEED situation to West. West handled it in his best manner, civilly assisting the little man to rise, and bowing himself off with the most graceful expressions of regret for the mishap. Miss Weyland was walking slowly, waiting for him, and he fell in beside her on the sidewalk. " Don't speak to me suddenly," said she, in rather a muf- fled voice. " I don't want to scream on a public street." "Scratch a professor and you find a Tartar," said West, laughing too. "When I finally caught you, laggard that I was, you looked as if he were being rude." Miss Weyland questioned the rudeness; she said that the man was only superbly natural. "Thoughts came to him and he blabbed them out artlessly. The only things that he seemed in the least interested in were his apples and Bee. Don't you think from this that he must be a floral and faunal naturalist?" "No Goth, at any rate. Did you happen to notice the tome sticking out of his coat pocket? It was The Religion of Humanity, unless my old eyes deceived me. Who under heaven reads Comte nowadays?" "Not me," said Miss Weyland. "There's nothing to it. As a wealthy old friend of mine once remarked, people who read that sort of books never make over eighteen hundred a year." On that they turned into Saltman's. There much sta- tionery and collateral stuff was bought for cash paid down, and all for the use ot the Department. Next, at a harness- store, a leash was bargained for and obtained, and Behe- moth bowled over no more young men that day. There- after, the two set their faces westerly till they came to the girl's home, where the dog was delivered to the cook, and Miss Weyland went upstairs to kiss her mother. Still later they set out northward through the lamp-lit night for the older part of town, where resided the aunt on whose beheilf there was dunning to be done that night. Charles Gardiner West asserted that he had not a thing in all this world to do, and that erranding was only another OUEED II way of taking a walk, when you came to think of it. She was frankly glad of his company; to be otherwise was to be fantastic; and now as they strolled she led him to talk of his work, which was never difficult. For West, despite his rising prosperity, was dissatisfied with his calling, the reason being, as he himself sometimes put it, that his heart did not abide with the money changers. "Sometimes at night," he said seriously, "I look back over the busy day and ask myself what it has all amounted to. Suppose I did all the world's stock-jobbing, what would I really have accomplished? You may say that I could take all the money I made and spend it for free hospi- tals, but would I do it? No. The more I made, the more I 'd want for myself, the more all my interest and ambition would twine themselves around the counting-room. You can't serve two masters, can you. Miss Weyland? Uplift- ing those who need uplifting is a separate business, all by itself." "You could make the money," laughed she, "and let me spend it for you. I know this minute where I could put a million to glorious advantage." " I 'm going to get out of it," said West. " I 've told Semple so — though perhaps it ought not to go further just yet. I'd enjoy," said he, "just such work as yours. There's none finer. You 'd like me immensely as your royal master, I suppose? Want nothing better than to curtsy and kow- tow when I flung out a gracious order? — as, for instance, to shut up shop and go and take a holiday?" "Delicious! Though I doubt if anybody in the world could improve on Mr. Dayne." Suddenly a new thought struck her, and she made a faint grimace. "There's nothing so very fine about my present work — oh me! I '11 give you that if you want it." " I see I must look this gift horse over very closely. What is it?" "They call it dunning." " I forgot. You started to tell me, and then your dog ran la OUEED amuck and began butting perfect strangers all over the place." ,. , . . "Oh," said she, "it's the commonest little story in the world. ' All landladies can tell them to you by the hour. This man has been at Aunt Jennie's nearly a month, and what's the color of his money she has n't the faintest idea. Such is the way our bright young men carve out their fortunes — the true Gothic architecture! Possibly Aunt Jennie has thrown out one or two delicate hints, carefully insulated to avoid hurting his feeUngs. You know the way our ladies of the old school do — the worst collectors the world has ever seen. So she telephoned me this morning — I 'm her business woman, you see — asking me to come and advise her, and I 'm coming, and after supper — " "Well, what '11 you do?" "I'm going to talk with him, with the man. I'm simply going to collect that money. Or if I can't — " "What's the horrid alternative?" "I'm going to fire him!" West laughed merrily. His face always looked most charm- ingwhen he smiled. '* Upon my word I believe you can do it." " I have done it, lots of times." "Ah! And is the ceremony ever attended by scenes of storm and violence?" "Never. They march like little lambs when I say the word . Hay-foot — straw-foot ! ' ' " But then your aunt loses their arrears of board, I suppose." "Yes, and for that reason I never fire except as a last desperate resort. Signs of penitence, earnest resolves to lead a better lifcj are always noted and carefully considered." " If you should need help with this customer to-night — not that I think you will, oh no ! — telephone me. I 'm amazingly good at handling bright young men. This is your aunt's, is n't it?" "No, no — next to the corner over there. O heavens! Look — look!" West looked. Up the front steps of Miss Weyland's OUEED 13 Aunt Jennie's a man was going, a smallish man in a suit of dusty clothes, who limped as he walked. The electric light at the corner illumined him perfectly — glinted upon the spectacles, touched up the stout volume in the coat-pocket, beat full upon the swaybacked derby, whereon its owner had sat what time Charlotte Lee Weyland apologized for the gaucherie of Behemoth. And as they watched, this man pushed open Aunt Jennie's front door, with never so much as a glance at the door-bell, and stepped as of right inside. Involuntarily West and Miss Weyland had halted; and now they stared at each other with a kind of wild surmise which rapidly yielded to ludicrous certainty. West broke into a laugh. "Well, do you think you'll have the nerve to fire him?" II Mrs. Paynter's Boarding-House : which was not founded as an Eleemosynary Institution. THERE was something of a flutter among the gathered boarders when Miss Weyland was seen to be enter- ing the house, and WiUiam Klinker, who announced the fact from his place by the window, added that that had ought to help some with the supper. He reminded the parlor that there had been Porterhouse the last time. Miss Miller, from the sofa, told Mr. Klinker archly that he was so material. She had only the other day mastered the word, but even that is more than could be said for Mr. Klinker. Major Brooke stood by the Latrobe heater, read- ing the evening paper under a flaring gas-light. He habitu- ally came down early to get it before anybody else had a chance. By Miss Miller on the sofa sat Mr. Bylash, stroking the glossy moustache which other ladies before her time had admired intensely. Despite her archness Miss Miller had heard with a pang that Miss Weyland was com- ing to supper, and her reason was not unconnected with this same Mr. Bylash. In earlier meetings she had vaguely noted differences between Mrs. Paynter's pretty niece and herself. True, she considered these differences all in her own favor, as, for example, her far larger back pompadour, with the puffs, but you never could tell about gentlemen. "I'm surprised," she said to Mr. Klinker, "Mr. Bylash did n't go out to give her the glad hand, and welcome her into our humble coturee." Mr. Bylash, who had been thinking of doing that very thing, said rather shortly that the ladies present quite satisfied him. "And who do you think brought her around and right up to the door ? " continued William Klinker, taking na QUEED 15 notice of their blandishments. "Hon, West — Charles Gardenia West — -" A scream from Miss Miller applauded the witty hit. "Oh, it ain't mine," said Mr. Klinker modestly. "I heard a fellow get it off at the shop the other day. He's a pretty smooth fellow, Charles Gardenia is — a httle too smooth for my way of thinking. A fellow that's always so smilin' — Oh, you Smithy!" he suddenly yelled out the window — "Smithy! Hey! — Aw, I can beat the face off you! — Awright — eight sharp at the same place. — Go on, you fat Mohawk you! . . . But say," he resumed to the parlor, "y'know that little woman is a stormy petrel for this house — that's right. Remember the last time she was here — the time we had the Porterhouse? Conference in the dining-room after supper, and the next morning out went the trunks of that red-head fellow — from Baltimore — what's his name? — Milhiser." "Well, she has n't got any call to intrude in my affairs," said Mr. Bylash, still rather miffed. " I 'm here to tell you that!" "Oh, I ain't speakin' of the reg'lars," answered Klinker, "so don't get nervous. But say, I got kind of a hunch that here is where the little Doc gets his." Klinker's hunch was not without foundation; this very question was being agitated at that moment in the room just over his head. Miss Weyland, having passed the parlor portieres with no thought that her movements were at- tracting interest on the other side of them, skipped up the stairs, rapped on her Aunt Jennie's door, and ran breath- lessly into the room. Her aunt was sitting by the bureau, reading a novel from the circulating library. Though she had been sitting right here since about four o'clock, only getting up once to light the gas, she had a casual air like one who is only killing a moment's time between important engagements. She looked up at the girl's entrance, and an affectionate smile lit her well-lined face. "My dear Sharlee! I'm so glad to see you," I6 QUEED They kissed tenderly. "Oh, Aunt Jennie, tell me! Is he — this man you tele- phoned me about — is he a little, small, dried young man, with spectacles and a brown derby, and needing a hair-cut, and the gravest, drollest manner in the world? Tell me — is he?" "My dear, you have described him to the life. Where did you see him?" Sharlee collapsed upon the bed. Presently she revived and outlined the situation to Aunt Jennie. Mrs. Paynter listened with some interest. If humor is a defect, as they tell us nowadays, she was almost a fault- less woman. And in her day she had been a beauty and a toast. You hear it said generously of a thousand, but it happened to be true in her case. The high-bred regularity of feature still survived, but she had let herself go in latter years, as most women will who have other things than them- selves to think about, and hard things at that. Her old black dress was carelessly put on; she could look at herself in the mirror by merely leaning forward an inch or two, and it never occurred to her to do it — an uncanny thing in a woman. "I'm sure it sounds quite like him," said Mrs. Paynter, when her niece had finished. "And so Gardiner West walked around with you. I hope, my dear, you asked him in to supper? We have an exceptionally nice Porterhouse steak to-night. But I suppose he would scorn — " The girl interrupted her, abolishing and demolishing such a thought. Mr. West would have been only too pleased, she said, but she positively would not ask him, because of the serious work that was afoot that night. "The pleasure I 've so far given your little man," laughed she, patting her aunt's cheeks with her two hands, "has been negligible — I have his word for that — and to-night it is going to be the same, only more so." Sharlee arose, took off her coat and furs, laid them on the bed, and going to the bureau began fixing her hciir in the OUEED 17 back before the long mirror. No matter how well a woman looks to the untrained, or man's, eye, she can always put in some time pleasurably fixing her hair in the back. "Now," said Sharlee, "to business. Tell me all about the little dead-beat." "It is four weeks next Monday," said Mrs. Paynter, putting a shoe-horn in her novel to mark the place, "since the young man came to me. He was from New York, and just off the train. He said that he had been recommended to my house, but would not say by whom, nor could he give references. I did not insist on them, for I can't be too strict, Sharlee, with all the other boarding- places there are and that room standing empty for two months hand-running, and then for three months before that, before Miss Catlett, I mean. The fact is, that I ought to be over on the Avenue, where I could have only the best people. It would be in- finitely more lucrative — why^ my dear, you should hear Amy Marsden talk of her enormous profits! And Amy, while a dear, sweet little woman, is not clever! I remember as girls — but to go back even of that to the very heart of the matter, who ever heard of a clever Wilkerson ? For she, you know, was born ..." "Never you mind Mrs. Marsden, Aunt Jennie," said the girl, gently drawing her back to the muttons, — "we'll make lots more money than she some day. So you gave him the room, then?" "Yes, the room known as the third hall back. A small, neat, economical room, entirely suitable for a single gentle- man. I gave him my lowest price, though I must say I did not dream then that he would spend all his time in his room, apparently having no downtown occupation, which is cer- tainly not what one expects from gentlemen, who get low terms on the silent understanding that they will take them- selves out of the house directly after breakfast. Nevertheless — will you believe it? — ten days passed and not a word was said about payment. So one morning I stopped him in the hall, as though for a pleasant talk. However, I was careful l8 OUEED to introduce the point, by. means of an anecdote I told him, that guests here were expected to pay by the week. Of course I supposed that the hint would be sufficient." "But it was n't, alas?" "On the contrary, ten days again passed, and you might suppose there was no such thing as money in all this world. Then I resolved to approach him directly. I knocked on his door, and when he opened it, I told him plainly and in so many words that I would be very much gratified if he would let me have a check whenever convenient, as unfortun- ately I had heavy bills due that must be met. I was very much mortified, Sharlee! As I stood there facing that young man, dunning him like a grocer's clerk, it flashed into my mind to wonder what your great-grandfather, the Governor, would think if he could have looked down and seen me. For as you know, my dear, though I doubt if you altogether real- ize it at all times, since our young people of to-day, I regret to have to say it — though of course I do except you from this criticism — " By gentle interruption and deft transition, Sharlee once more wafted the conversation back to the subject in hand. "And when you went so far as to tell him this, how did he take it?" "He took it admirably. He told me that I need feel no concern about the matter; that while out of funds for the moment, doubtless he would be in funds again shortly. His manner was dignified, calm, unabashed — " "But it did n't blossom, as we might say, in money?" "As to that — no. What are you to do, Sharlee? I feel sure the man is not dishonest, — in fact he has a singularly honest face, transparently so, — but he is only somehow queer. He appears an engrossed, absent-minded young man — what is the word I want? — an eccentric. That is what he is, an engrossed young eccentric." Sharlee leaned against the bureau and looked at her aunt thoughtfully. "Do you gather, Aunt Jennie, that he's a gentleman?" OUEED 19 Mrs. Paynter threw out her hands helplessly. "What does the term mean nowadays? The race of gentlemen, as the class existed in my day, seems to be disappearing from the face of the earth. We see occasional survivals of the old order, like Gardiner West or the young Byrd men, but as a whole — well, my dear, I will only say that the modern standards would have excited horror fifty years ago and "Well, but according to the modern standards, do you think he is?" " I don't know. He is and he is n't. But no — no — no! He is not one. No man can be a gentleman who is utterly indifferent to the comfort and feelings of others, do you think so?" " Indeed, no! And is that what he is?" "I will illustrate by an incident," said Mrs. Paynter. "As I say, this young man spends his entire time in his room, where he is, I believe, engaged in writing a book." " Oh, me! Then he's penniless, depend upon it." " Well, when we had the frost and freeze early last week, he came to me one night and complained of the cold in his room. You know, Sharlee, I do not rent that room as a sit- ting-room, nor do I expect to heat it, at the low price, other than the heat from the halls. So I invited him to make use of the dining-room in the evenings, which, as you know, with the folding-doors drawn, and the yellow lamp lit, is converted to all intents and purposes into a quiet and com- fortable reading-room. Somewhat grumblingly he went down. Fifi was there as usual, doing her algebra by the lamp. The young man took not the smallest notice of her, and presently when she coughed several times — the child's cold happened to be bad that night — he looked up sharply and asked her please to stop. Fifi said that she \^^as afraid she could n't help it. He replied that it was impossible for him to work in the room with a noise of that sort, and either the noise or he would have to vacate. So Fifi gathered up her things and left. I found her, half an hour later, in her 30 OUEED little bed-room, which was ice-cold, coughing and crying over her sums, which she was trying to work at the bureau. That was how I found out about it. The child would never have said a word to me." "How simply outrageous!" said the girl, and became silent and thoughtful. "Well, what do you think I'd better do, Sharlee?" "I think you'd better let me waylay him in the hall after supper and tell him that the time has come when he must either pay up or pack up." "My dear! Can you well be as blunt as that?" "Dear Aunt Jennie, as I view it, you are not running an eleemosynary institution here?" "Of course not," replied Aunt Jennie, who really did not know whether she was or not. Sharlee dropped into a chair and began manicuring her pretty little nails. "The purpose of this establishment is to collect money from the transient and resident public. Now you're not a bit good at collecting money because you're so well-bred, but I 'm not so awfully well-bred — " "You are—" " I 'm bold — blunt — brazen ! I 'm forward. I 'm reso- lute and grim. In short, I belong to the younger generation which you despise so — " " I don't despise you, you dear — " "Come," said Sharlee, springing up; "let's go down. I'm wild to meet Mr. Bylash again. Is he wearing the moleskin vest to-night, do you know? I was fascinated by it the last time I was here. Aunt Jennie, what is the name of this young man — the one I may be compelled to bounce?" "His name is Queed. Did you ever — ?" "Queed? Queed? Q-u-e-e-d?" "An odd name, is n't it? There were no such people in my day." "Probably after to-morrow there will be none such once more." " OUEED 21 "Mr. Klinker has christened him the little Doctor — a hit at his appearance and studious habits, you see — and even the servants have taken it up." "Aunt Jennie," said Sharlee at the door, "when you introduce the little Doctor to me, refer to me as your busi- ness woman, won't you? Say 'This is my niece. Miss Weyland, who looks after my business affairs for me,' or something like that, will you? It will explain to him why I, a comparative stranger, show such an interest in his finan- cial affairs." Mrs. Paynter said, "Certainly, my dear," and they went down, the older lady disappearing toward the dining-room. In the parlor Sharlee was greeted cordially and somewhat respectfully. Major Brooke, who appeared to have taken an extra toddy in honor of her coming, or for any other reason why, flung aside his newspaper and seized both her hands. Mr. Bylash, in the moleskin waistcoat, sure enough, bowed low and referred to her agreeably as "stranger," nor did he again return to Miss Miller's side on the sofa. That young lady was gay and giggling, but watchful withal. When Sharlee was not looking. Miss Miller's eye, rather hard now, roved over her ceaselessly from the point of her toe to the top of her feather. What was the trick she had, the little way with her, that so delightfully unlocked the gates of gentlemen's hearts? At supper they were lively and gay. The butter and preserves were in front of Sharlee, for her to help to; by her side sat Fifi, the young daughter of the house. Major Brooke sat at the head of the table and carved the Porter- house, upon which when the eyes of William Klinker fell, they irrepressibly shot forth gleams. At the Major's right sat his wife, a pale, depressed, nervous woman, as anybody who had lived thirty years with the gallant officer her hus- band had a right to be. She was silent, but the Major talked a great deal, not particularly well. Much the same may be said of Mr. Bylash and Miss Miller. Across the table from Mrs. Brooke stood an empty chair. It belonged to the Uttle 22 OUEED Doctor, Mr. Queed. Across the table from Sharlee stood an- other. This one belonged to the old professor, Nicolovius. When the meal was well along, Nicolovius came in, bowed around the table in his usual formal way, and silently took his place. While Sharlee liked everybody in the boarding- house, including Miss Miller, Professor Nicolovius was the only one of them that she considered at all interesting. This was because of his strongly-cut face, like the grand- ducal villain in a ten-twenty-thirty melodrama, and his habit of saying savage things in a soft, purring voice. He was rude to everybody, and particularly rude, so Sharlee thought, to her. As for the little Doctor, he did not come in at all. Half-way through supper, Sharlee looked at her aunt and gave a meaning glance at the empty seat. "I don't know what to make of it," said Mrs. Paynter sotto voce. "He 's usually so regular. " To the third floor she dispatched the colored girl Emma, to knock upon Mr. Queed's door. Presently Emma re- turned with the report that she had knocked, but could obtain no answer. "He's probably fallen asleep over his book," murmured Sharlee. " I feel certain it's that kind of book." But Mrs. Paynter said that he rarely slept, even at night. "... Right on my own front porch, mind you!" Major Brooke was declaiming. "And, gentlemen, I shook my finger in his face and said, 'Sir, I never yet met a Republican who was not a rogue!' Yes, sir, that is just what I told him — " "I'm afraid," said Nicolovius, smoothly, — it was the only word he uttered during the meal, — "your remark harrows Miss Weyland with reminders of the late Mr. Surface." The Major stopped short, and a silence fell over the table. It was promptly broken by Mrs. Paynter, who invited Mrs Brooke to have a second cup of coffee. Sharlee looked at her plate and said nothing. Everybody thought that the old professor's remark was in bad taste, for it was gener- ally known that Henry G. Surface was one subject that even OUEED 23 Miss Weyland's intimate friends never mentioned to her. Nicolovius, however, appeared absolutely unconcerned by the boarders' silent rebuke. He ate on, rapidly but abstemi- ously, and finished before Mr. Bylash, who had had twenty minutes' start of him. The last boarder rising drew shut the folding-doors into the parlor, while the ladies of the house remained to super- intend and assist in clearing off the supper things. The last boarder this time was Mr. Bylash, who tried without success to catch Miss Weyland's eye as he slid to the doors. He hung around in the parlor waiting for her till 8.30, at which time, having neither seen nor heard sign of her, he took Miss Miller out to the moving-picture shows. In the dining-room, when Emma had trayed out the last of the things, the ladies put away the unused silver, watered the geranium, set back some of the chairs, folded up the white cloth, placing it in the sideboard drawer, spread the pretty Turkey-red one in its stead, set the reading lamp upon it; and just then the clock struck eight. "Now then," said Sharlee. So the three sat down and held a council of war as to how little Doctor Queed, the young man who would n't pay his board, was to be brought into personal contact with Charlotte Lee Weyland, the grim and resolute collector. Various stratagems were proposed, amid much merriment. But the collector herself adhered to her original idea of a masterly waiting game. "Only trust me," said she. "He can't spend the rest of his life shut up in that room in a state of dreadful siege. Hunger or thirst will force him out; he'll want to buy some of those apples, or to mail a letter — " Fifi, who sat on the arm of Sharlee's chair, laughed and coughed. " He never writes any. And he never has gotten but one, and that came to-night." "Fifi, did you take your syrup before supper? Well, go and take it this minute." "Mother, it does n't do any good." 24 OUEED "The doctor gave it to you, my child, and it's going to make you better soon." Sharlee followed Fifi out with troubled eyes. However, Mrs. Paynter at once drew her back to the matter in hand. "Sharlee, do you know what would be the very way to settle this little difficulty? To write him a formal, business- like letter. We'll—" "No, I've thought of that, Aunt Jennie, and I don't believe it 's the way. A letter could n't get to the bottom of the matter. You see, we want to find out something about this man, and why he is n't paying, and whether there is reason to think he can and will pay. Besides, I think he needs a talking to on general principles." "Well — but how are you going to do it, my dear?" "Play a Fabian game. Wait! — be stealthy and wait! If he does n't come out of hiding to-night, I '11 return for him to-morrow. I'll keep on coming, night after night, night after night, n — Some one's knocking — " "Come in," said Mrs. Paynter, looking up. The door leading into the hall opened, and the man him- self stood upon the threshold, looking at them absently. "May I have some supper, Mrs. Paynter? I was closely engaged and failed to notice the time." Sharlee arose. "Certainly. I'll get you some at once," she answered innocently enough. But to herself she was saying: "The Lord has delivered him into my hand." Ill Encounter between Charlotte Lee Weyland, a Landlady's Agent, and Doctor Queed, a Young Man who would n't pay his Board. SHARLEE glanced at Mrs. Paynter, who caught her- self and said: "Mr. Queed, my niece — Miss Wey- land." But over the odious phrase, "my business woman," her lips boggled and balked; not to save her life could she bring herself to damn her own niece with such an intro- duction. Noticing the omission and looking through the reasons for it as through window-glass, Sharlee smothered a laugh, and bowed. Mr. Queed bowed, but did not laugh or even smile. He drew up a chair at his usual place and sat down. As by an involuntary reflex, his left hand dropped toward his coat-pocket, whence the top edges of a book could be descried protruding. Mrs. Paynter moved vaguely toward the door. As for her business woman, she made at once for the kitchen, where Emma and her faithful co-worker and mother, Laura, rose from their supper to assist her. With her own hands the girl cut a piece of the Porterhouse for Mr. Queed. Creamed potatoes, two large spoonfuls, were added; two rolls; some batterbread; coffee, which had to be diluted with a little hot water to make out the full cup; butter; damson preserves in a saucer: all of which duly set forth and arranged on a shiny black "waiter." "Enough for a whole platform of doctors," said Sharlee, critically reviewing the spread. "Thank you, Emma." She took the tray in both hands and pushed open the swing-doors with her side, thus making her ingress to the dining-room in a sort of crab-fashion. Mrs. Paynter was 36 OUEED gone. Mr. Queed sat alone in the dining-room. His book lay open on the table and he was humped over it, hand in his hair. Having set her tray on the side-table, Sharlee came to his side with the plate of steak and potatoes. He did not stir, and presently she murmured, "I beg your pardon." He looked up half-startled, not seeming to take in for the first second who or what she was. "Oh . . . yes." He moved his book, keeping his finger in the place, and she set down the plate. Next she brought the appurten- ances one by one, the butter, coffee, and so on. The old mahogany sideboard yielded knife, fork, and spoon; salt and pepper; from the right-hand drawer, a fresh napkin. These placed, she studied them, racked her brains a mo- ment and, from across the table — "Is there anything else?" Mr. Queed's eye swept over his equipment with intelli- gent quickness. "A glass of water, please." "Oh! — Certainly." Sharlee poured a glass from the battered silver pitcher on the side- table — the one that the Yankees threw out of the window in May, 1862 — and duly placed it. Mr. Queed was oblivious to the little courtesy. By this time he had propped his book open against the plate of rolls and was reading it between cuts on the steak. Beside the plate he had laid his watch, an open-faced nickel one about the size of a desk-clock. "Do you think that is everything?" " I believe that is all." "Do you remember me?" then asked Sharlee. He glanced at her briefly through his spectacles, his eyes soon returning to his supper. "I think not." The girl smiled suddenly, all by herself. " It was my dog that — upset you on Main Street this afternoon. You may remember . . .? I thought you seemed to — to limp OUEED 27 a little when you came in just now. I 'm awfully sorry for the — mishap — " " It is of no consequence," he said, with some signs of un- rest. " I walk seldom. Your — pleasure-dog was uninjured, I trust?" "Thank you. He was never better." That the appearance of the pleasure-dog's owner as a familiar of his boarding-house piqued his curiosity not the slightest was only too evident. He bowed, his eyes return- ing from steak to book. " I am obliged to you for getting my supper." If he had said, "Will you kindly go?" his meaning could hardly have been more unmistakable. However, Mrs. Paynter's resolute agent held her ground. Taking advan- tage of his gross absorption, she now looked the delin- quent boarder over with some care. At first glance Mr. Queed looked as if he might have been born in a library, where he had unaspiringly settled down. To support this impression there were his pallid complexion and enormous round spectacles; his dusty air of premature age; his gen- eral effect of dried-up detachment from his environment. One noted, too, the tousled mass of nondescript hair, which he wore about a month too long; the jiecktie-ba,ndtriumph- mg over the collar in the back; the collar itself, which had a kmd of celluloid look and shone with a blue unwholesome sheen under the gas-light. On the other hand there was the undeniably trim cut of the face, which gave an unexpected and contradictory air of briskness. The nose was bold ; the long straight mouth might have belonged to a man of ac- tion. Probably the great spectacles were the turning-point in the man's-'whole effect. You felt that if you could get your hands on him long enough to pull those off, and cut his hair, you might have an individual who would not so surdy have been christened the little Doctor. These details the agent gathered at her leisure. Mean- time here was the situation, stark and plain; and she, and she alone, must handle it. She must tell this young man, 28 OUEED so frankly engrossed in his mental and material food, which he ate by his watch, thkt he must fork over four times seven-fifty or vacate the premises. . . . Yes, but how to do it? He could not be much older than she herself, but his manner was the most impervious, the most impossible that she had ever seen. "I'm grim and I'm resolute," she said over to herself; but the splendid defiance of the motto failed to quicken her blood. Not even the recollection of the month's sponge for board and the house-rent due next week spurred her to action. Then she thought of Fifi, whom Mr. Queed had packed off sobbing for his good pleasure, and her resolution hardened. " I 'm afraid I must interrupt your reading for a moment," she said quietly. "There is something I want to say. . . ." He glanced up for the second time. There was surprise and some vexation in the eyes behind his circular glasses, but no sign of any interest. "Well?" "When my aunt introduced you to me just now she did not — did not identify me as she should — " "Really, does it make any difference?" "Yes, I think it does. You see, I am not only her niece, but her business woman, her agent, as well. She is n't very good at business, but still she has a good deal of it to be done. She runs this boarding-place, and people of various kinds come to her and she takes them into her house. Many of these people are entirely unknown to her. In this way trouble sometimes arises. For instance people come now and then who — how shall I put it? — are very reserved about making their board-payments. My aunt hardly knows how to deal with them — " He interrupted her with a gesture and a glance at his watch. "It always seems to me an unnecessary waste of time not to be direct. You have called to collect my arrear- age for board?" "Well, yes. I have." "Please tell your aunt that when I told her to give herself OUEED 29 no concern about that matter, I exactly meant what I said. To-night I received funds through the mail; the sum, twenty dollars. Your aunt," said he, obviously ready to return to his reading matter, "shall have it all." But Sharlee had heard delinquent young men talk like that before, and her business platform in these cases was to be introduced to their funds direct. "That would cut down the account nicely," said she, looking at him pleasantly, but a shade too hard to imply a beautiful trust. She went on much like the firm young lady enumerators who take the census: "By the way — let me ask: Have you any regular business or occupation?" "Not, I suppose, in the sense in which you mean the interrogation." "Perhaps you have friends in the city, who — " ' ' Friends ! Here ! Good Lord — nol" said he, with exas- perated vehemence. "I gather," was surprised from her, "that you do not wish—" "They are the last thing in the world that I desire. My experience in that direction in -New York quite sufificed me, I assure you. I came here," said he, with rather too blunt an implication, "to be let alone." "I was thinking of references, you know. You have friends in New York, then?" "Yes, I have two. But I doubt if you would regard them as serviceable for references. The best of them is only a policeman; the other is a yeggman by trade — his brother, by the way." She was silent a moment, wondering if he were telling the truth, and deciding what to say next. The young man used the silence to bolt his coffee at a gulp and go hurriedly but deeply into the preserves. "My aunt will be glad that you can make a remittance to-night. I will take it to her for you with pleasure." "Oh!— All right." He put his hand into his outer breast-pocket, pulled out 30 OUEED an envelope, and absently pitched it across the table. She looked at it and saw that it was postmarked the city and bore a typewritten address. "Am I to open this?" "Oh, as you like," said he, and, removing the spoon, turned a page. The agent picked up the envelope with anticipations of helpful clues. It was her business to find out everything that she could about Mr. Queed. A determinedly moneyless, friendless, and vocationless young man could not daily stretch his limbs under her aunt's table and retain the Third Hall Back against more compensatory guests. But the letter proved a grievous disappointment to her. Inside was a folded sheet of cheap white paper, apparently torn from a pad. Inside the sheet was a new twenty-dollar bill. Thatwas all. Apart from the address, there was no writing anj^vhere. Yet the crisp greenback, incognito though it came, indu- bitably suggested that Mr. Queed was not an entire stranger to the science of money-making. " Ah," said the agent, insinuatingly, " evidently you have some occupation, after all — of — of a productive sort. . . ." He looked up again with that same air of vexed surprise, as much as to say: "What! You still hanging around!" "I don't follow you, I fear." " I assume that this money comes to you in payment for some — work you have done — " "It is an assumption, certainly." "You can appreciate, perhaps, that I am not idly inquisi- tive. I should n't — " "What is it that you wish to know?" "As to this money — " "Really, you know as much about it as I do. It came exactly as I handed it to you: the envelope, the blank paper, and the bill." "But you know, of course, where it comes from?" " I can't say I do. Evidently," said Mr. Queed, " it is intended as a gift." OUEED 31 "Then — perhaps you have a good friend here after all? Some one who has guessed — " "I think I told you that I have but two friends, and I know for a certainty that they are both in New York. Be- sides, neither of them would give me twenty dollars." "But — but — but," said the girl, laughing through her utter bewilderment — "are n't you interested to know who did give it to you ? Are n't you curious ? I assure you that in this city it's not a bit usual to get money through the mails from anonymous admirers — " "Nor did I say that this was a usual case. I told you that I did n't know who sent me this." "Exactly—" "But I have an idea. I think my father Sent it." "Oh! Your father. . . ." So he had a father, an eccentric but well-to-do father, who, though not a friend, yet sent in twenty dollars now and then to relieve his son's necessities. Sharlee felt her heart rising. "Don't think me merely prying. You see I am naturally interested in the question of whether you — will find your- self able to stay on here — " "You refer to my ability to make my board pay- ments?" "Yes." Throughout this dialogue, Mr. Queed had been eating, steadily and effectively. Now he slid his knife and fork into place with a pained glance at his watch ; and simultaneously a change came over his face, a kind of tightening, shot through with Christian fortitude, which plainly advertised an unwelcome resolution. "My supper allowance of time," he began warningly, "is practically up. However, I suppose the definite settle- ment of this board question cannot be postponed further. I must not leave you under any misapprehensions. If this money came from my father, it is the first I ever had from him in my life. Whether I am to get any more from him 33 OUEED is problematical, to say the least. Due consideration must be given the fact that he and I have never met." "Oh! . . . Does — he live here, in the city?" "I have some reason to believe that he does. It is in- deed," Mr. Queed set forth to his landlady's agent, "be- cause of that belief that I have come here. I have assumed, with good grounds, that he would promptly make himself known to me, take charge of things, and pay my board; but though I have been here nearly a month, he has so far made not the slightest move in that direction, unless we count this letter. Possibly he leaves it to me to find him, but I, on my part, have no time to spare for any such un- dertaking. I make the situation clear to you? Under the circumstances I cannot promise you a steady revenue from my father. On the other hand, for all that I know, it may be his plan to send me money regularly after this." There was a brief pause. " But — apart from the money consideration — have you no interest in finding him?" "Oh — if that is all one asks! But it happens not to be a mere question of my personal whim. Possibly you can appreciate the fact that finding a father is a tremendous task when you have no idea where he lives, or what he looks like, or what name he may be using. My time is wholly absorbed by my own work. I have none to give to a wild- goose chase such as that, on the mere chance that, if found, he would agree to pay my board for the future." If he had been less in earnest he would have been gro- tesque. As it was, Sharlee was by no means sure that he escaped it; and she could not keep a controversial note out of her voice as she said : — "Yours must be a very great work to make you view the finding of your father in that way." "The greatest in the world," he answered, drily. "I may call it, loosely, evolutionary sociology." She was so silent after this, and her expression was so peculiar, that he concluded that his words conveyed nothing to her. OUEED 33 "The science," he added kindly, "which treats of the origin, nature, and history of human society; analyzes the relations of men in organized communities; formulates the law or laws of social progress and permanence ; and correctly applies these laws to the evolutionary development of human civilization." "I am familiar with the terms. And your ambition is to become a great evolutionary sociologist?" He smiled faintly. "To become one?" "Oh! Then you are one already?" For answer, Mr. Queed dipped his hand into his inner pocket, produced a large wallet, and from a mass of papers selected a second envelope. "You mention references. Possibly these will impress you as even better than friends." Sharlee, seated on the arm of Major Brooke's chair, ran through the clippings: two advertisements of a well-known "heavy" review announcing articles by Mr. Queed; a table of contents torn from a year-old number of the Po- litical Science Quarterly to the same effect; an editorial from a New York newspaper commenting on one of these articles and speaking laudatorily of its author; a private letter from the editor of the "heavy" urging Mr. Queed to write another article on a specified subject, "Sociology and Socialism." To Sharlee the exhibit seemed surprisingly formidable, but the wonder in her eyes was not at that. Her marvel was for the fact that the man who was capable of so cruelly elbowing little Fifi out of his way should be counted a follower of the tenderest and most human of sciences. "They impress me," she said, returning his envelope; "but not as better than friends." "Ah? A matter of taste. Now — " "I had always supposed," continued the girl, looking at him, "that sociology had a close relation with life — in fact, that it was based on a conscious recognition of — the brother- hood of man." 34 OUEED "Your supposition is doubtless sound, though you express it so loosely." "Yet you feel that the sociologist has no such relation?" He glanced up sharply. At the subtly hostile look in her eyes, his expression became, for the first time, a little inter- ested. "How do you deduce that?" "Oh! . . . It is loose, if you Hke — but I deduce it from what you have said — and implied — about your father and — having friends." But what she thought of, most of all, was the case of Fifi. She stood across the table, facing him, looking down at him ; and there was a faintly heightened color in her cheeks. Her eyes were the clearest lapis lazuli, heavily fringed with laishes which were blacker than Egypt's night. Her chin was finely and strongly cut; almost a masculine chin, but unmasculinely softened by the sweetness of her mouth. Mr. Queed eyed her with some impatience through his round spectacles. "You apparently jumble together the theory and what you take to be the application of a science in the attempt to make an impossible unit. Hence your curious confusion. Theory and application are as totally distinct as the poles. The few must discover for the many to use. My own task — since the matter appears to interest you — is to work out the laws of human society for those who come after to practice and apply." "And suppose those who come after feel the same unwill- ingness to practice and apply that you, let us say, feel?" "It becomes the business of government to persuade them." "And if government shirks also? What is government but the common expression of masses of individuals very much like yourself?" "There you return, you see, to your fundamental error. There are very few individuals in the least like me. I hap- OUEED 35 pen to be writing a book of great importance, not to myself merely, but to posterity. If I fail to finish my book, if I am delayed in finishing it, I can hardly doubt that the world will be the loser. This is not a task like organizing a pro- longed search for one's father, or dawdling with friends, which a million men can do equally well. I alone can write my book. Perhaps you now grasp my duty of concentrating all my time and energy on this single work and ruthlessly eliminating whatever interferes with it." The girl found his incredible egoism at once amusing and extremely exasperating. "Have you ever thought," she asked, "that thousands of other self-absorbed men have considered their own particular work of supreme importance, and that most of them have been — mistaken? " "Really I have nothing to do with other men's mistakes. I am responsible only for my own." "And that is why it is a temptation to suggest that con- ' ceivably you had made one here." "But you find difficulty in suggesting such a thought convincingly? That is because I have not conceivably made any such mistake. A Harvey must discover the theory of the circulation of the blood ; it is the business of lesser men to apply the discovery to practical ends. It takes a Whitney to invent the cotton gin, but the dullest negro roustabout can operate it. Why multiply illustrations of a truism? Theory, you perceive, calls for other and higher gifts than ap- plication. The man who can formulate the eternal laws of social evolution can safely leave it to others to put his laws into practice." Sharlee gazed at him in silence, and he returned her gaze, his face wearing a look of the rankest complacence that she had ever seen upon a human countenance. But all at once his eyes fell upon his watch, and his brow clouded. "Meantime," he went on abruptly, "there remains the question of my board." "Yes. ... Do I understand that you — derive your 36 OUEED living from these social laws that you write up for others to practice?" "Oh, no — impossible! There is no living to be made there. When my book comes out there may be a different story, but that is two years and ten months off. Every minute taken from it for the making of money is, as you may now understand, decidedly unfortunate. Still," he added depressedly, "I must arrange to earn something, I suppose, since my father's assistance is so problematical. I worked for money in New York, for awhile." "Oh — did you?" "Yes, I helped a lady write a thesaurus." "Oh. ..." " It was a mere fad with her. I virtually wrote the work for her and charged her five dollars an hour." He looked at her narrowly. " Do you happen to know of any one here who wants work of that sort done? " The agent did not answer. By a series of covert glances she had been trying to learn, upside down, what it was that Mr. Queed was reading. "Sociology," she had easily picked out, but the chapter heading, on the opposite page, was more troublesome, and, deeply absorbed, she had now just suc- ceeded in deciphering it. The particular division of his sub- ject in which Mr. Queed was so much engrossed was called "Man's Duty to His Neighbors." Struck by the silence, Sharlee looked up with a small start, and the faintest possible blush. "I beg your par- don?" "I asked if you knew of any lady here, a wealthy one, who would like to write a thesaurus as a fad." The girl was obliged to admit that, at the moment, she could think of no such person. But her mind fastened at once on the vulgar, hopeful fact that the unsocial sociol- ologist wanted a job. "That's unfortunate," said Mr. Queed. "I suppose I must accept a little regular, very remunerative work — to settle this board question once and for all. An hour or two OUEED 37 a day, at most. However, it is not easy to lay one's hand on such work in a strange city." "Perhaps," said Miss Weyland slowly, "I can help you." "I'm sure I hope so," said he with another flying glance at his watch. "That is what I have been approaching for seven minutes." "Don't you always find it an unnecessary waste of time not to be direct?" He sat, slightly frowning, impatiently fingering the pages of his book. The hit bounded off him Uke a rubber ball thrown against the Great Wall of China. "Well?" he demanded. "What have you to propose?" The agent sat down in a chair across the table, William Klinker's chair, and rested her chin upon her shapely little hand. The other shapely little hand toyed with the crisp twenty dollar bill, employing it to trace geometric designs upon the colored table-cloth. Mr. Queed had occasion to consult his watch again before she raised her head. "I propose," she said, "that you apply for some special editorial work on the Post." "The Post ? The Post ? The morning newspaper here? " "One of them." He laughed, actually laughed. It was a curious, slow laugh, betraying that the muscles which accomplished it were flabby for want of exercise. "And who writes the editorials on the Post now?" "A gentleman named Colonel Cowles — " "Ah! His articles on taxation read as if they might have been written by a military man. I happened to read one the day before yesterday. It was most amusing — " "Excuse me. Colonel Cowles is a friend of mine — " "What has that got to do with his political economy? If he is your friend, then I should say that you have a most amusing friend." Sharlee rose, decidedly irritated. "Well — that is my suggestion. I believe you will find it worth thinking over. Good-night." 38 OUEED "The Post pays its contributors well, I suppose?" "That you would have to take up with its owners." "Clearly the paper needs the services of an expert — though, of course, I could not give it much time, only enough to pay for my keep. The suggestion is not a bad one — not at all. As to applying, as you call it, is this amiable ColQnel Cowles the person to be seen?" "Yes. No — wait a minute." She had halted in her pro- gress to the door; her mind's eye conjured up a probable interview between the Colonel and the scientist, and she hardly had the heart to let it go at that. Moreover, she earnestly wished, for Mrs. Paynter's reasons, that the ten- ant of the third hall back should become associated with the pay-envelope system of the city. "Listen," she went on. "I know one of the directors of the Post, and shall 'be glad to speak to him in your behalf. Then, if there is an opening, I'll send you, through my aunt, a card of intro- duction to him and you can go to see him." "Couldn't he come to see me? I am enormously busy." "So is he. I doubt if you could expect him to — " "H'm. Very well. I am obliged to you for your sugges- tion. Of course I shall take no step in the matter until I hear from you." "Good-evening," said the agent, icily. He bowed slightly in answer to the salute, uttering no further word ; for him the interview ended right there, cleanly and satisfactorily. From the door the girl glanced back. Mr. Queed had drawn his heavy book before him, pencil in hand, and was once more engrossed in the study and annotation of "Man's Duty to His Neighbors." In the hall Sharlee met Fifi, who was tipping toward the dining-room to discover, by the frank method of ear and keyhole, how the grim and resolute collector was faring. "You're still alive, Sharlee! Any luck?" "The finest in the world, darling! Twenty dollars in the hand and a remunerative job for him in the bush." OUEED 39 Fifi did a few steps of a minuet. "Hooray!" said she in her weak little voice. Sharlee put her arms around the child's neck and said in her ear: "Fifi, be very gentle with that young man. He's the most pitiful little creature I ever saw." "Why," said Fifi, "I don't think he feels that way at all—" "Don't you see that's just what makes him so infinitely pathetic? He's the saddest little man in the world, and it has never dawned on him." It w£is not till some hours later, when she was making ready for bed in her own room, that it occurred to Sharlee that there was something odd in this advice to her Uttle cousin. For she had started out with the intention to tell Mr. Queed that he must be very gentle with Fifi. IV Relating how Two Stars in their Courses fought for Mr. Queed; and how he accepted Remunerative Employment under Colonel Cowles, the Military Political Economist. THE stars in their courses fought for Mr. Queed in those days. Somebody had to fight for him, it seemed, since he was so little equipped to fight for himself, and the stars kindly undertook the assignment. Not merely had he attracted the militant services of the bright little ce- lestial body whose earthly agent was Miss Charlotte Lee Wey- land ; but this little body chanced to be one of a system or galaxy, associated with and exercising a certain power, akin to gravitation, over that strong and steady planet known among men as Charles Gardiner West. And the very next day, the back of the morning's mail being broken, the little star used some of its power to draw the great planet to the telephone, while feeling, in a most unstellar way, that it was a decidedly cheeky thing to do. However, nothing could have exceeded the charming radiance of Planet West, and it was he himself who introduced the topic of Mr. Queed, by inquiring, in mundane language, whether or not he had been fired. "No!" laughed the star. " Instead of firing him, I'm now bent on hiring him. Oh, you'd better not laugh! It's to you I want to hire him!" But at that the shining Planet laughed the more. "What have I done to be worthy of this distinction? Also, what can I do with him? To paraphrase his own inimitable remark about your dog, what is the object of a man Uke that? What is he for?" Sharlee dilated on the renown of Mr. Queed as a writer upon abstruse themes. Mr. West was not merely agreeable; OUEED 41 he was interested. It seemed that at the very last meeting of the Post directors — to which body Mr. West had been elected at the stockholders' meeting last June — it had been decided that Colonel Cowles should have a little help in the editorial department. The work was growing; the Colonel was ageing. The point had been to find the help. Who knew but what this little highbrow was the very man they were looking for? " I '11 call on him — at your aunt's, shall I? — to-day if I can. Why, not a bit of it! The thanks are quite the other way. He may turn out another Charles A. Dana, cleverly disguised. When are you going to have another half -holiday up there?" Sharlee left the telephone thinking that Mr. West was quite the nicest man she knew. Ninety-nine men out of a hundred, in his position, would have said, " Send him to see me." Mr. West had said, " I '11 call on him at your aunt's," and had absolutely refused to pose as the gracious dispenser ©f patronage. However, a great many people shared Shar- lee's opinion of Charles Gardiner West. One of them walked into his office at that very moment, also petitioning for something, and West received him with just that same un- affected pleasantness of manner which everybody found so agreeable. But this one's business, as it happened, com- pletely knocked from Mr. West's head the matter of Mr. Queed. In fact, he never gave it another thought. The fol- lowing night he went to New York with a little party of friends, chiefly on pleasure bent; and, having no particularly frugal mind, permitted himself a very happy day or so in the metropolis. Hence it happened that Sharlee, learning from her aunt that no Post directors had called forcing remunera- tive work on Mr. Queed, made it convenient, about five days after the telephone conversation, to meet Mr. West upon the street, quite by accident. Any girl can tell you how it is done. "Oh, by the way," she said in the most casual way, "shall I send my little Doctor Queed to call upon you some day?" West was agreeably contrite ; abused himself for a shiftless 42 OUEED lackwit who was slated for an unwept grave; promised to call that very day; and, making a memorandum the instant he got back to the office, this time did not fail to keep his word. Not that Mr. Queed had been inconvenienced by the little delay. The minute after his landlady's agent left him, he had become immersed in that great work of his, and there by day and night, he had remained. Having turned over to the agent the full responsibility for finding work for him,f he no longer had to bother his head about it. The whole matter dropped gloriously from his mind; he read, wrote, and avoided prac- ticing sociology with tremendous industry; and thus he might have gone on for no one knows how long had there not, at five o'clock on the fifth day, come a knock upon his door. "Well?" he called, annoyed. Emma came in with a card. The name,atwhich the young man barely glanced, conveyed nothing to him. "Well? What does he want?" Emma did not know. "Oh! " said Mr. Queed, irritably— " tell him to come up, if he must." The Post director came up — two flights ; he knocked ; was curtly bidden to enter; did so. He stepped into one of the smallest rooms he had ever seen in his life; about nine by five-and-a-half, he thought. A tiny single bed ran along one side of it; jammed against the foot of the bed was a tiny table. A tiny chair stood at the table; behind the chair stood a tiny bureau; beside the bu- reau, the tiniest little iron wash-stand in the world. In the chair sat a man, not tiny, indeed, but certainly nobody's prize giant. He sat in a kind of whirling tempest of books and papers, and he rode absorbedly in the whirlwind and majestically directed the storm. West was intensely interested. "Mr. Queed?" he asked, from just inside the door. "Yes," said theother,not looking up. "Whatcan I do for you? " OUEED 43 West burst out laughing ; he could n't help it. "Maybe you can do a great deal, Mr. Queed. On the other hcind maybe I can do some little trifle for you. Which leg the boot is on nobody on earth can say at this juncture. I have ventured to call," said he, "as an ambassador from the morning Post of this city." "ThePos "If you should need any — ahem — assistance, I assume that you will call me," said Queed, after a pause. "Thank you. You can hardly realize what your presence here, your companionship and, I hope I may say, your friendship, mean to me." OUEED 247 Queed glanced at him over the table, and hastily turned his glance away. He had surprised Nicolovius looking at him with a curiously tender look in his black diamond eyes. The young man went to the office that night, worried by two highly irritating ideas. One was that Nicolovius was most unjustifiably permitting himself to become dependent upon him. The other was that it was very pecuHar that a Fenian refugee should care to express slanderous views of the soldiers of a Lost Cause. Both thoughts, once intro- duced into the young man's mind, obstinately stuck there. XX Meeting of the Post Directors to elect a Successor to Colonel Cowles; Charles Gardiner West's Sensible Remarks on Mr. Queed; Mr. West's Resignation from Old Blaines College, and New Consecration to the Uplift. THE Post directors gathered in special meeting oft Monday. Their first act was to adopt some beauti- ful resolutions, prepared by Charles Gardiner West, in memory of the editor who had served the paper so long and so well. Next they changed the organization of the staff, splitting the late Colonel's heavy duties in two, by creating the separate position of managing editor; this official to have complete authority over the news department of the paper, as the editor had over its editorial page. The directors named Evan Montague, the able city editor of the Post, to fill the new position, while promoting the strongest of the reporters to fill the city desk. The chairman, Stewart Byrd, then announced that he was ready to receive nominations for, or hear discussion about, the editorship. One of the directors, Mr. Hopkins, observed that, as he viewed it, the directors should not feel restricted to local timber in the choice of a successor to the Colonel. He said that the growing importance of the Post entitled it to an editor of the first ability, and that the directors should find such a one, whether in New York, or Boston, or San Fran- cisco. Another director, Mr. Hoggs, remarked that it did not necessarily follow that a thoroughly suitable man must be a New York, Boston, or San Francisco man. Unless he was greatly deceived, there was an eminently suitable man, not merely in the city, but in the office of the Post, where, since QUEED 249 Colonel Cowles's death, he was doing fourteen hours of ex- cellent work per day for the sum of fifteen hundred dollars per annum. "Mr. Boggs's point,** said Mr. Hickok, a third director, who looked something like James E. Winter, " is exceedingly well taken. A United States Senator from a Northern State is a guest in my house for Reunion week. The Senator reads the editorials in the Post with marked attention, has asked me the name of the writer, and has commended some of his utterances most highly. The Senator tells me that he never reads the editorials in his own paper — a Boston paper, Mr. Hopkins, by the bye — his reason being that they are never worth reading." Mr. Shorter and Mr. Porter, fourth and fifth directors, were much struck with Mr. Hickok's statement. They averred that they had made a point of reading the Post editorials during the Colonel's absence, with a view to sizing up the assistant, and had been highly pleased with the char- acter of his work. Mr.Wilmerding,asixth director, declared that the Colonel had, in recent months, more than once remarked to him that the young man was entirely qualified to be his successor. In fact, the Colonel had once said that he meant to retire before a great while, and, of course with the directors' ap- proval, turn over the editorial helm to the assistant. There- fore, he, Mr. Wilmerding, had pleasure in nominating Mr. Queed for the position of editor of the Post. Mr. Shorter and Mr. Porter said that they had pleasure in seconding this nomination. Mr. Charles Gardiner West, a seventh director, was recognized for a few remarks. Mr. West expressed his in- tense gratification over what had been said in eulogy of Mr. Queed. This gratification, some might argue, was not wholly disinterested, since it was Mr. West who had dis- covered Mr. Queed and sent him to the Post. To praise the able editor was therefore to praise the alert, watchful, and discriminating director. (Smiles.) Seriously, Mr. Queed's ago OUEED work, especially during the last few months, had been of the highest order, and Mr. West, having worked beside him more than once, ventured to say that he appreciated his valuable qualities better than any other director. If the Colonel had but lived a year or two longer, there could not, in his opinion, be the smallest question as to what step the honor- able directors should now take. But as it was, Mr. West, as Mr. Queed's original sponsor on the Post, felt it his duty to call attention to two things. The first was the young man's extreme youth. The second was the fact that he was a stranger to the State, having lived there less than two years. At his present rate of progress, it was of course patent to any observer that he was a potential editor of the Post, and a great one. But might it not be, on the whole, desirable — Mr. West merely suggested the idea in the most tentative way, and wholly out of his sense of sponsorship for Mr. Queed — to give him a little longer chance to grow and broaden and learn, before throwing the highest responsibility and the final honors upon him? Mr. West's graceful and sensible remarks made a distinct impression upon the directors, and Mr. Hopkins took occa- sion to say that it was precisely sudi thoughts as these that had led him to suggest looking abroad for a man. Mr. Shorter and Mr. Porter asserted that they would deprecate doing anything that Mr. West, with his closer knowledge of actual conditions, thought premature. Mr. Boggs admitted that the ability to write editorials of the first order was not all that should be required of the editor of the Post. It might be doubtful, thought he, whether so young a man could represent the Post properly on occasions of a semi-public nature, or in emergency situations such as occasionally arose in an editorial office. Mr. Wilmerding inquired the young man's age, and upon being told that he was under twenty-six, remarked that only very exceptional abilities could counteract such youth as that. "That," said Mr. Hickok, glancing cursorily at Charle? OUEED 251 Gardiner West, "is exactly the sort of abilities Mr. Queed possesses." Discussion flagged. The chairman asked if they were ready for a vote upon Mr. Queed. "No, no — let's take our time," said Mr. Wilmerding. "Perhaps somebody has other nominations to offer." No one seemed to have other nominations to offer. Some minutes were consumed by random suggestions and unpro- gressive recommendations. Busy directors began to look at their watches. "Look here, Gard — I mean Mr. West," suddenly said young Theodore' Fyne, the baby of the board. "Why could n't we persuade you to take the editorship? . . . Re- sign from the college, you know?" "Now you have said something!" cried Mr. Hopkins, en- thusiastically. Mr. West, by a word and a gesture, indicated that the suggestion was preposterous and the conversation highly unwelcome. But it was obvious that young Mr. Fyne's suggestion had caught the directors at sight. Mr. Shorter and Mr. Porter affirmed that they had not ventured to hope, etc., etc., but that if Mr. West could be induced to consider-the position, no choice would appear to them so eminently — etc. , etc. So said Mr. Boggs. So said Messrs. Hopkins, Fyne, and Wilmerding. Mr. Hickok, the director who resembled James E. Winter, looked out of the window. Mr. West, obviously restive under these tributes, was con- strained to state his position more fully. For more than one reason which should be evident, he said, the mention of his name in this connection was most embarrassing and dis- tasteful to him. While thanking the directors heartily for their evidences of good -will, he therefore begged them to desist, and proceed with the discussion of other candidates. "In that case," said Mr. Hickok, "it appears to be the reluctant duty of the nominator to withdraw Mr. West's name." 253 OUEED But the brilliant young man's name, once thrown into the arena, could no more be withdrawn than the fisherman of legend could restore the genie to the bottle, or Pandora get her pretty gifts back into the box again. There was the idea, fairly out and vastly alluring. The kindly directors pressed it home. No doubt they, as well as Plonny Neal, appreciated that Blaines College did not give the yqung man a fair field for his talents ; and certainly they knew with admiration the articles with which he sometimes adorned the columns of their paper. Of all the directors, they now pointed out, he had stood closest to Colonel Cowles, and was most familiar with the traditions and policies of the Post. Their urgings increased in force and persistence; perhaps they felt en- couraged by a certain want of finality in the young man's tone ; and at length West was compelled to make yet another statement. He was, he explained, utterly disconcerted at the turn the discussion had taken, and found the situation so embarrass- ing that he must ask his friends, the directors, to extricate him from it at once. The editorship of the Post was an office which he, personally, had never aspired to, but it would be presumption for him to deny that he regarded it as a post which would reflect honor upon any one. He was willing to admit, in this confidential circle, moreover, that he had taken up college work chiefly with the ambition of assisting Blaines over a critical year or two in its history, and that, to put it only generally, he was not indefinitely bound to his present position. But under the present circumstances, as he said, he could not consent to any discussion of his name; and unless the directors would agree to drop him from further consideration, which he earnestly preferred, he must reluct- antly suggest adjournment. "An interregnum," said Mr. Hickok, looking out of the window, "is an unsatisfactory, not to say a dangerous thing. Would it not be better, since we are gathered for that purpose, to take decisive action to-day?" " What is your pleasure, gentlemen ? " inquired Chairman Byrd. OUEED 253 Mr. Hickok was easily overruled. The directors seized eagerly on Mr. West's suggestion. On motion of Mr. Hop- kins, seconded by Mr. Shorter and Mr. Porter, the meeting stood adjourned to the third day following at noon. On the second day following the Post carried the inter- esting announcement that Mr. West had resigned from the presidency of Blaines College, a bit of news which his friends read with sincere pleasure. The account of the occurrence gave one to understand that all Mr. West's well-known per- suasiveness had been needed to force the trustees to accept his resignation. And when James E. Winter read this part of it, at his suburban breakfast, he first laughed, and then swore. The same issue of the Post carried an editorial, men- tioning in rather a sketchy way the benefits Mr. West had conferred upon Blaines College, and paying a high and confi- dent tribute to his qualities as a citizen. The young acting- editor, who never wrote what he did not think, had taken much pains with this editorial, especially the sketchy part. Of course the pestiferous Chronicle took an entirely different view of the situation. "The Chronicle has won its great fight," so it nervily said, "against classism in Blaines Col- lege." And it had the vicious taste to add : " Nothing in Mr. West's presidential life became him like the leaving of it." On the third day the directors met again. With char- acteristic delicacy of feeling, West remained away from the meeting. However, Mr. Hopkins, who seemed to know what he was talking about, at once expressed his conviction that they might safely proceed to the business which had brought them together. "Perceiving clearly that I represent a minority view," said Mr. Hickok, "I request the director who nominated Mr. Queed to withdraw his name. I think it proper that our action should be unanimous. But I will say, frankly, that if Mr. Queed 's name remains before the board, I shall vote for him, since I consider him from every point of view the man for the position." Mr. Queed's name having been duly withdrawn, the di- 854 OUEED rectors unanimously elected Charles Gardiner West to the editorship of the Post. By a special resolution introduced by Mr. Hopkins, they thanked Mr. Queed for his able con- duct of the editorial page in the absence of the editor, and voted him an increased honorarium of eighteen hundred dollars a year. The directors adjourned, and Mr. Hickok stalked out, looking more like James E. Winter than ever. The other directors, however, looked highly gratified at themselves. They went out heartily congratulating each other. By clever work they had secured for their paper the services of one of the ablest, most gifted, most polished and popular young men in the State. Nevertheless, though they never knew it, their action was decidedly displeasing to at least one faith- ful reader of the Post, to wit. Miss Charlotte Lee Weyland, of the Department of Charities. Sharlee felt strongly that Mr. Queed should have had the editorship, then and there. It might be said that she had trained him up for exactly that position. Of course, Mr. West, her very good friend, would make an editor of the first order. But, with all the flocks that roamed upon his horizon, ought he to have reached out and plucked the one ewe lamb of the poor assistant? Be- sides, she thought that Mr. West ought to have remained at Blaines College. But how could she maintain this attitude of criticism when the new editor himself, bursting in upon her little parlor in a golden nimbus of optimism, radiant good humor and success, showed up the shallowness and the injustice of it? "To have that college off my neck — Whew! I'm as happy, my friend, as a schoolboy on the first day of vaca- tion. I have n't talked much about it to you," continued Mr. West, "for it 's a bore to listen to other people's troubles ' — but that college had become a perfect old man of the sea! The relief is glorious! I 'm bursting with energy and enthu- siasm and big plans for the Post." "And Mr. Queed?" said Sharlee. "Was he much dis- appointed?" OUEED 255 West was a little surprised at the question, but he gathered from her tone that she thought Mr. Queed had some right to be. "Why, I think not," he answered, decisively. "Why in the world should he be? Of course it means only a delay of a year or two for him, at the most. I betray no confidence when I tell you that I do not expect to remain editor of the Post forever." Sharlee appeared struck by this summary of the situa- tion, which, to tell the truth, had never occurred to her. Therefore, West went on to sketch it more in detail to her. "The last thing in the world that I would do," said he, "is to stand in that boy's light. My one wish is to push him to the front just as fast as he can stride. Why, I discovered Queed — you and I did, that is — and I think I may claim to have done something toward training him. To speak quite frankly, the situation was this: In spite of his great abilities, he is still very young and inexperienced. Give him a couple of years in which to grow and broaden and get his bearings more fully, and he will be the very best man in sight for the place. On the other hand, if he were thrust prematurely into great responsibility, he would be almost certain to make some serious error, some fatal break, which would impair his usefulness, and perhaps ruin it forever. Do you see my point? As his sponsor on the Post, it seemed to me unwise and unfair to expose him to the risks of forcing his pace. That 's the whole story. I 'm not the king at all, I'm only the regent during the king's minority." Sharlee now saw how unjust she had been, to listen to the small whisper of doubt of West's entire magnanimity. "You are much wiser and farther-sighted than I." "Perish the thought!" " I 'm glad my little Doctor — only he is n't either little or very much of a doctor any more — has such a good friend at court." "Nonsense. It was only what anybody who stopped to think a moment would have done." 256 OUEED " Not everybody who stops to think is so generous. . . .'* This thought, too, Mr. West abolished by a word. " But you will like the work, won't you ! " continued Shar- lee, still self-reproachful. " I do hope you will." "I shall like it immensely," said West, above pretending, as some regents would have done, that he was martyring himself for his friend, the king. "Where can you find any bigger or nobler work? At Blaines College of blessed mem- ory, the best I could hope for was to reach and influence a handful of lumpish boys. How tremendously broader is the opportunity on the Postl Think of having a following of a hundred thousand readers a day! (You allow three or four readers to a copy, you know.) Think of talking every morning to such an audience as that, preaching progress and high ideals, courage and honesty and kindness and faith — moulding their opinions and beliefs, their ambi- tions, their very habits of thought, as I think they ought to be moulded. ..." ' He talked in about this vein till eleven o'clock, and Sharlee listened with sincere admiration. Nevertheless, he left her still troubled by a faint doubt as to how Mr. Queed himself felt about what had been done for his larger good. But when she next saw Queed, only a few days later, this doubt in- stantly dissolved and vanished. She had never seen him less inclined to indict the world and his fortune. XXI Queed sits on the Steps with Sharlee, and sees Some Old Soldiers go marching by. FAR as the eye could see, either way, the street was two parallels of packed humanity. Both sidewalks, up and down, were loaded to capacity and spilling off surplus down the side-streets. Navigation was next to impossible; as for crossing you were a madman to think of such a thing. At the sidewalks' edge policemen patrolled up and down in the street with their incessant cry of "Back there!" — pausing now and then to dislodge small boys from trees, whither they had climbed at enormous peril to themselves and innocent by-standers. Bunting, flags, streamers were everjnvhere; now and then a floral arch bearing words of wel- come spanned the roadway; circus day in a small town was not a dot upon the atmosphere of thrilled expectancy so all-pervasive here. It was, in fact, the crowning occasion of the Confederate Reunion, and the fading remnants of Lee's armies were about to pass in annual parade and review. Mrs. Weyland's house stood full on the line of march. It was the house she had come to as a bride ; she owned it ; and because it could not easily be converted over her head into negotiable funds, it had escaped the predacious clutches of Henry G. Surface. After the crash, it would doubtless have been sensible to sell it and take something cheaper; but sen- timent made her cling to this house, and her daughter, in time, went to work to uphold sentiment's hands. It was not a large house, or a fine one, but it did have a very com- fortable little porch. To-day this porch was beautifully decorated, like the whole town, with the colors of two coun- tries, one living and one dead; and the decorations for the dead were three times greater than the decorations for the 258 OUEED living. And why not? Yet, at that, Sharlee was liberal- minded and a thorough-going nationalist. On some houses, the decorations for the dead were five times greater, like Benjamin's mess; on others, ten times; on yet others, no colors at all floated but the beloved Stars and Bars. Upon the steps of Mrs. Weyland's porch sat Mr. Queed, come by special invitation of Mrs. Weyland's daughter to witness the parade. The porch, being so convenient for seeing things, was hos- pitably taxed to its limits. New people kept turning in at the gate, mostly ladies, mostly white-haired ladies wearing black, and Sharlee was incessantly springing up to greet them. However, Queed, feeling that the proceedings might be instructive to him, had had the foresight to come early, before the sidewalks solidified with spectators; and at first, and spasmodically thereafter, he had some talk with Sharlee. "So you did n't forget?" she said, in greeting him. He eyed her reflectively. "When I was seven years old," he began, " Tim once asked me to attend to something for him while he went out for a minute. It was to mind some bacon that he had put on to broil for supper. I became absorbed in a book I was reading, and Tim came back to find the bacon a crisp. I believe I have never forgotten anything from that day to this. You have a holiday at the Department?" "Why, do you suppose we'd work to-day!" said Sharlee, and introduced him to her mother, who, having attentively overheard his story of Tim and the bacon, proceeded to look him over with some care. Sharlee left them for a moment, and came back bearing a flag about the size of a man's visiting card. "You are one of us, are n't you? I have brought you," she said, "your colors." Queed looked and recognized the flag that was everywhere in predominance that day. "And what will it mean if I wear it?" "Only," said Sharlee, "that you love the South." OUEED 259 Vaguely Queed saw in her blue-spar eyes the same kind of softness that he noticed in people's voices this afternoon, a softness which somehow reminded him of a funeral, Fifi's or Colonel Cowles's. "Oh, very well, if you like." Sharlee put the flag in his buttonhole under her mother's watchful gaze. Then she got cushions and straw-mats, and explained their uses in connection with steps. Next, she gave a practical demonstration of the same by seating the young man, and sitting down beside him. "One thing I have noticed about loving the South. Everybody does it, who takes the trouble to know us. Look at the people! — millions and millions. . . ." "Colonel Cowles would have liked this." "Yes — dear old man." Sharlee paused a moment, and then went on. "He was in the parade last year — on the beautifullest black horse — You never saw anything so handsome as he looked that day. It was in Savannah, and I went. I was a maid of honor, but my real duties were to keep him from marching around in the hot sun all day. And now this year . . . You see, that is what makes it so sad. When these old men go tramping by, everybody is thinking: ' Hundreds of them won't be here next year, and hundreds more the next year, and soon will come a year when there won't be any parade at all.'" She sprang up to welcome a new arrival, whom she greeted as either Aunt Mary or Cousin Maria, we really cannot undertake to say which. • Queed glanced over the group on the porch, to most of whom he had been introduced, superfluously, as it seemed to him. There must have been twenty or twenty-five of them; some seated, some standing at the rail, some sitting near him on the steps; but all, regardless of age and sex, wearing the Confederate colors. He noticed particularly the white-haired old ladies, and somehow their faces, also, put him in mind of Fifi's or Colonel Cowles's funeral. Sharlee came and sat down by him again. " Mr. Queed," 26o OUEED said she, "I don't know whether you expect sympathy about what the Post directors did, or congratulations." "Oh, congratulations," he answered at once. "Consider- ing that they wanted to discharge me a year ago, I should say that the testimonial they gave me represented a rather large change of front." "Personally, I think it is splendid. But the important thing is: does it satisfy you?" "Oh, quite." He added : "If they had gone outside for a man, I might have felt slighted. It is very different with a man like West. I am perfectly willing to wait. You may remember that I did not promise to be editor in any par- ticular year." "I know. And when they do elect you — you see I say when, and not if — shall you pitch it in their faces, as you said?" "No — I have decided to keep it — for a time at any rate." Sharlee smiled, but it was an inward smile and he never knew anything about it. "Have you gotten really interested in the work — personally interested, I mean?" He hesitated. " I hardly like to say how much." "The more you become interested in it — and I believe it will be progressive — the less you will mind saying so." "It is a strange interest — utterly unlike me — " "How do you know it is n't more like you than anything you ever did in your life?" That struck him to silence ; he gave her a quick inquiring glance, and looked away at once ; and Sharlee, for the mo- ment entirely oblivious of the noise and the throng all about her, went on. " I called that a magnificent boast once — about your be- ing editor of the Post. Do you remember? Is n't it time I was confessing that you have got the better of me?" " I think it is too soon," he answered, in his quietest voice, "to say whether I have got the better of , you, or you have got the better of me." OUEED a6i Sharlee looked off down the street. "But you certainly will be editor of the Post some day." "As I recall it, we did not speak only of editorial writing that night." "Oh, listen . . . !" From far away floated the strains of " Dixie," crashed out by forty bands. The crowd on the sidewalks stirred; pro- longed shouts went up; and now all those who were seated on the porch arose at one motion and came forward. Sharlee had to spring up to greet still another relative. She came back in a moment, sincerely hoping that Mr. Queed would resume the conversation which her exclamation had interrupted. But he spoke of quite a different matter, a faint cloud on his intelligent brow. "You should hear Professor Nicolovius on these veterans of yours." "What does he say about them? Something hateful, I'm sure." "Among other things, that they are a lot of professional beggars who have lived for forty years on their gray uniforms, and can best serve their country by dying with all possible speed. Do you know," he mused, "if you could hear him, I believe you would be tempted to guess that he is a former Union officer — who got into trouble, perhaps, and was cashiered." "But of course you know all about him?" " No," said he, honest, but looking rather annoyed at hav- ing given her such an opening, "I know only what he told me." "Sharlee," came her mother's voice from the rear, "are you sitting on the cold stone?" "No, mother. Two mats and a cushion." "Well, he is not a Union officer," said Sharlee to Queed, ' ' for if he were, he would not be bitter. All the bitterness now- adays comes from the non-combatants, the camp-followers, the sutlers,. and the cowards. Look, Mr. Queed! Look!" The street had become a tumult, the shouting grew into a 262 OUEED roar. Two squares away the head of the parade swept into view, and drew steadily nearer. Mr. Queed looked, and felt a thrill in despite of himself. At the head of the column came the escort, with the three regimental bands, mounted and bicycle police, city officials, visiting military, sons of veterans, and the militia, includ- ing the resplendent Light Infantry Blues of Richmond, a crack drill regiment with an honorable history dating from 1789, and the handsomest uniforms ever seen. Behind the escort rode the honored commander-in-chief of the veterans, and staff, the grand marshal and staff, and a detachment of mounted veterans. The general commanding rode a dashing white horse, which he sat superbly despite his years, and re- ceived an ovation all along the line. An even greater ovation went to two festooned carriages which rolled behind the general staff: they contained four black-clad women, no longer young, who bore names that had been dear to the hearts of the Confederacy. After these came the veterans afoot, stepping like youngsters, for that was their pride, in faded equipments which contrasted sharply with the shin- ing trappings of the militia. They marched by state divi- sions, each division marshaled into brigades, each brigade subdivided again into camps. At the head of each division rode the major-general and staff, and behind each staff came a carriage containing the state's sponsor and maids of honor. And everywhere there were bands, bands playing "Dixie," and the effect would have been even more glorious, if only any two of them had played the same part of it at the same time. Everybody was standing. It is doubtful if in all the city there was anybody sitting now, save those restrained by physical disabilities. Conversation on the Weyland piazza became exceedingly disjointed. Everybody was excitedly calling everybody else's attention to things that seemed par- ticularly important in the passing spectacle. To Queed the amount these people appeared to know about it all was amazing. All during the afternoon he heard Sharlee identi- OUEED 263 fying fragments of regiments with a sureness of knowledge that he, an authority on knowledge, marveled at. The escort passed, and the officers and staffs drew on. The fine-figured old commander-in-chief, when he came abreast, turned and looked full at the Weyland piazza, seemed to search it for a face, and swept his plumed hat to his stirrup in a profound bow. The salute was greeted on the porch with a burst of hand-clapping and a great waving of flags. "That was for my grandmother. He was in love with her in 1850," said Sharlee to Queed, and immediately whisked away to tell something else to somebody else. One of the first groups of veterans in the line, headiiig the Virginia Division, was the popular R. E. Lee Camp of Rich- mond. All afternoon they trod to the continual accompani- ment of cheers. No exclusive ' ' show ' ' company ever marched in better time than these septuagenarians, and this was everywhere the subject of comment. A Grand Army man stood in the press on the sidewalk, and, struck by the gallant step of the old fellows, yelled out good-naturedly: — " You boys been drillin' to learn to march like that, have n't you?" Instantly a white-beard in the ranks called back: "No, sir ! We never have forgot ! ' ' Other camps were not so rhythmic in their tread. Some of the lines were very dragging and straggly ; the old feet shuffled and faltered in a way which showed that their march was nearly over. Not fifty yards away from Queed, one veteran pitched out of the ranks ; he was lifted up and received into the house opposite which he fell. Sadder than the men were the old battle-flags, soiled wisps that the aged hands held aloft with the most solicitous care. The flag-poles were heavy and the men's arms weaker than once they were; sometimes two or even three men acted jointly as standard-bearer. These old flags, mere unrecognizable fragments as many of them were, were popular with the onlookers. Each as it marched by, was hailed with a new roar. Of course there were many tears. There was hardly anybody in all that crowd. s64 OUEED over fifty years old, in whom the sight of these fast dwindling ranks did not stir memories of some personal bereavement. The old ladies on the porch no longer used their handker- chiefs chiefly for waving. Queed saw one of them wave hers frantically toward a drooping little knot of passing gray- coats, and then fall back into a chair, the same handkerchief at her eyes. Sharlee, who was explaining everything that anybody wanted to know, happened to be standing near him ; she followed his glance and whispered gently: — "Her husband and two of her brothers were killed at Gettysburg. Her husband was in Pickett's Division. Those •were Pickett's men that just passed — about all there are left now." A little while afterwards, she added : " It is not so gay as one of your Grand Army Days, is it? You see ... it all comes home very close to us. Those old men that can't be with us much longer are our mothers' brothers, and sweet- hearts, and uncles, and fathers. They went out so young — so brave and full of hope — they poured out by hundreds of thousands. Down this very street they marched, no more than boys, and our mothers stood here where we are stand- ing, to bid them godspeed. And now look at what is left of them, straggling by. There is nobody on this porch — but you — who did not lose somebody that was dear to them. . . . And then there was our pride ... for we were proud. So that is why our old ladies cry to-day." "And why your young ladies cry, too?" "Oh, ... I am not crying." "Don't you suppose I know when people are crying and when they are n't? — Why do you do it?" Sharlee lowered her eyes. "Well . . . it's all pretty sad, you know . . . pretty sad." She turned away, leaving him to his own devices. From his place on the top step, Queed turned and let his frank glance run over the ladies on the porch. The sadness of face that he had noticed earlier had dissolved and precipitated now: there was hardly a dry eye on that porch but his own. QUEED 265 What were they all crying for? Miss Weyland's explanation did not seem very convincing. The war had ended a genera- tion ago. The whole thing had been over and done with many years before she was born. He turned again, and looked out with unseeing eyes over the thick street, with the thin strip of parade moving down the middle of it. He guessed that these ladies on the porch were not crying for definite brothers, or fathers, or sweethearts they had lost. People did n't do that after forty years ; here was Fifi only dead a year, and he never saw anybo<^v crying for her. No, they were weeping over an idea ; it was senti- ment, and a vague, misty, unreasonable sentiment at that. And yet he could not say that Miss Weyland appeared simply foolish with those tears in her eyes. No, the girl somehow managed to give the effect of seeing farther into things than he himself. . . . Her tears evidently were in the nature of a tribute : she was paying them to an idea. Doubtless there was a certain largeness about that. But obviously the pay- ing of such a tribute could do no possible good — unless — to the payer. Was there anything in that? — in the theory. . . . Unusual bursts of cheering broke their way into his con- sciousness, and he recalled himself to see a squad of negro soldiers, all very old men, hobbling by. These were of the faithful, whom no number of proclamations could shake from allegiance to Old Marster. One of them declared himself to be Stonewall Jackson's cook. Very likely Stonewall Jackson's cooks are as numerous as once were ladies who had been kissed by LaFayette, but at any rate this old negro was the object of lively interest all along the line. He was covered with reunion badges, and carried two live chickens under his arm. Queed went down to the bottom step, the better to hear the comments of the onlookers, for this was what interested him most. He found himself standing next to an exception- ally clean-cut young fellow of about his own age. This youth appeared a fine specimen of the sane, wholesome, successful 266 OUEED young American business man. Yet he was behaving like a madman, yelling like Bedlam, wildly flaunting his hat — a splendid-looking Panama — now and then savagely brand- ishing his fists at an unseen foe. Queed heard him saying fiercely, apparently to the world at large: "They could n't lick us now. By the Lord, they could n't lick us now!" Queed said to him: "You were badly outnumbered when they licked you." Flaunting his hat passionately at the thin columns, the young man shouted into space: "Outnumbered — outarmed — outequipped — outrationed — but not outgeneraled, sir, not outsoldiered, not outmanned! " " You seem a little excited about it. Yet you 've had forty years to get used to it." "Ah," brandished the young man at the soldiers, a glad battlenote breaking into his voice, " I 'm being addressed by a Yankee, am I?" " No," said Queed, " you are being addressed by an Ameri- can." "That's a fail reply," said the young man; and consented to take his eyes from the parade a second to glance at the author of it. "Hello! You're Doc — Mr. Queed, aren't you?" Queed, surprised, admitted his identity. "Ye-a-a-a!" said the young man, in a mighty voice. This time he shouted it directly at a tall old gentleman whose horse was just then dancing by. The gentleman smiled, and waved his hand at the flaunted Panama. "A fine-looking man," said Queed. "My father," said the young man. "God bless his heart!" "Was your father in the war?" "Was he in the war? My dear sir, you might say that he was the war. But you could scrape this town with a fine- tooth comb without finding anybody of his age that was n't in the war." The necessity for a new demonstration checked his speech for a moment. OUEED 267 Queed said: "Who are these veterans? What sort of people are they?" "The finest fellows in the world," said the yonng man. "An occasional dead-beat among them, of coursfe, but it's amazing how high an average of character they strike, con- sidering that they came out of four years of war — war 's de- moralizing, you know ! — with only their shirts to their backs, and often those were only borrowed. You '11 find some mighty solid business men in the ranks out there, and then on down to the humblest occupations. Look! See that little one- legged man with the beard that everybody's cheering! That's Corporal Henkel of Petersburg, commended I don't know how many times for bravery, and they would have given him the town for a keepsake when it was all over, if he had wanted it. Well, Henkel 's a cobbler — been one since '65 — and let me tell you he 's a blamed good one, and if you 're ever in Petersburg and want any half -soling done, let me tell you — Yea-a-a 1 See that trim-looking one with the little mustache — saluting now? He tried to save Stone- wall Jackson's life on the 2d of May, 1863, — threw himself in front of hipti and got badly potted. He's a D. D. now. Yea-a-a-a!" A victoria containing two lovely young girls, sponsor and maid of honor for South Carolina, dressed just alike, with parasols and enormous hats, rolled by. The girls smiled kindly at the young man, and he went through a very proper salute. "Watch the people!" he dashed on eagerly. "Wonderful how they love these old soldiers, is n't it? — they'd give 'em anything! And what a fine thing that is for them! — for the people, not the soldiers, I mean. I tell you we all give too much time to practical things — business — making money — taking things away from each other. It 's a fine thing to have a day now and then which appeals to just the other side of us — a regular sentimental spree. Do you see what I mean? Maybe I 'm talking like an ass. . . . But when you talk about Americans, Mr. Queed — let me tell you that 268 OUEED there isn't a State in the country that is raising better Americans than we are raising right here in this city. We 're as solid for the Union as Boston. But that is n't saying that we have forgotten all about the biggest happening in our history — the thing that threw over our civilization, wiped out our property, and turned our State into a graveyard. If we forgot that, we would n't be Americans, because we would n't be men." He went on fragmentarily, ever and anon interrupting himself to give individual ovations to his heroes and his gods : — "Through the North and West you may have one old sol- dier to a village ; here we have one to a house. For you it was a foreign war, which meant only dispatches in the newspapers. For us it was a war on our own front lawns, and the way we followed it was by the hearses backing up to the door. You can hardly walk a mile in any direction out of this city with- out stumbling upon an old breastworks. And in the city — well, you know all the great old landmarks, all around us as we stand here now. On this porch behind us sits a lady who knew Lee well. Many 's the talk she had with him after the' war. My mother, a bride then, sat in the pew behind Davis that Sunday he got the message which meant that the war was over. History! Why this old town drips with it. Do you think we should forget our heroes, Mr. Queed? Up there in Massa- chusetts, if you have a place where John Samuel Quincy Adams once stopped for a cup of tea, you fence it off, put a brass plate on the front door, and charge a nickel to go in. Which will history say is the greater man, Sam Adams or Robert E. Lee? If these were Washington's armies going by, you would probably feel a little excited, though you have had a hundred and twenty years to get used to Yorktown and the Philadelphia Congress. Well, Washington is no more to the nation than Lee is to the South. "But don't let anybody get concerned about our patriot- ism. We're better Americans, not worse, because of days like these, the reason being, as I say, that we are better OUEED 269 men. And if your old Uncle Sammy gets into trouble some day, never fear but we'll be on hand to pull him out, with the best troops that ever stepped, and another Lee to lead them." Somewhere during the afternoon there had returned to Queed the words in which Sharlee Weyland had pointed out to him — quite unnecessarily — that he was standing here between two civilizations. On the porch now sat Miss Wey- land's grandmother, representative of the dead aristocracy. By his side stood, clearly, a representative of the rising democ- racy — one of those "splendid young men" who, the girl thought, would soon be beating the young men of the North at every turn. It was valuable professionally to catch the point of view of these new democrats; and now he had grasped the fact that whatever the changes in outward form, It had an unbroken sentimental continuity with the type which it was replacing. "Did you ever hear Ben Hill's tribute to Lee?" inquired the young man presently. Queed happened to know it very well. However, the other could not be restrained from reciting it for his own satisfac- tion. " It is good — a good piece of writing and a fine tribute," said Queed. "However, I read a shorter and in some (vays an even better one in Harper's Weekly the other day." " Harper' s Weekly I Good Heavens! They '11 find out that William Lloyd Garrison was for us next. What'd it say?" "It was in answer to some correspondents who called Lee a traitor. The editor wrote five lines to say that, while it would be exceedingly difficult ever to make ' traitor ' a word of honorable distinction, it would be done if people kept on applying it to Lee. In that case, he said, we should have to find a new word to mean what traitor means now." The young man thought this over until its full meaning sank into him. " I don't know how you could say anything finer of a man," he remarked presently, " than that applying a disgraceful epithet to him left him entirely untouched, but 270 OUEED changed the whole meaning of the epithet. By George, that's pretty fine!" "My only criticism on the character, or rather on the greatness, of Lee," said Queed, introspective! y, "is that, so far as I have ever read, he never got angry. One feels that a hero should be a man of terrible passions, so strong that once or twice in his life they get away from him. Washing- ton always seems a bigger man because of his blast at Charles Lee." The young man seemed interested by this point of view. He said that he would ask Mrs. Beauregard about it. Not much later he said with a sigh: "Well! — It's about over. And now I must pay for my fun — duck back to the office for a special night session." Queed had taken a vague fancy to this youth, whose en- viably pleasant manners reminded him somehow of Charles Gardiner West. " I supposed that it was only in newspaper offices that work went on without regard to holidays." The young man laughed, and held out his hand. " I 'm very industrious, if you please. I 'm delighted to have met you, Mr. Queed — I 've known of you for a long time. My name 's Byrd — Beverley Byrd — and I wish you'd come and see me some time. Good-by. I hope I have n't bored you with all my war-talk. I lost a grandfather and three uncles in it, and I can't help being interested." The last of the parade went by; the dense crowd broke and overran the street; and Queed stood upon the bottom step taking his leave of Miss Weyland- Much interested, he had lingered till the other guests were gone ; and now there was nobody upon the porch but Miss Weyland's mother and grandmother, who sat at the further end of it, the eyes of both, did Mr. Queed but know it, upon him. ' ' Why don't you come to see me sometimes? " the daughter and granddaughter was saying sweetly. "I think you will have to come now, for this was a party, and a party calls for a party-call. Oh, can you make as clever a pun as that? " "Thank you — but I never pay calls." OUEED «7i "Oh, but you are beginning to do a good many things that you never did before." "Yes," he answered with curious depression. "I am." "Well, don't look so glum about it. You mustn't think that any change in your ways of doing is necessarily for the worse! " He refused to take up the cudgels; an uncanny thing from him. "Well ! I am obliged to you for inviting me here to-day. It has been interesting and — instructive." "And now you have got us all neatly docketed on your sociological operating table, I suppose?" "I am inclined to think," he said slowly, "that it is you who have got me on the operating table again." He gave her a quick glance, at once the unhappiest and the most human look that she had ever seen upon his face. "No," said she, gently, — "if you are on the table, you have put yourself there this time." "Well, good-by— " ' ' And are you coming to see me — to pay your party-call ? ' ' "Why should I? What is the point of these conventions — these little rules — ? " "Don't you like being with me? Don't you get a great deal of pleasure from my society?" "I have never asked myself such a question." He was gazing at her for a third time ; and a startled look sprang suddenly into his eyes. It was plain that he was ask- ing himself such a question now. A curious change passed over his face; a kind of dawning consciousness which, it was obvious, embarrassed him to the point of torture, while he resolutely declined to flinch at it. "Yes — I get pleasure from your society." The admission turned him rather white, but he saved him- self by instantly flinging at her : ' ' However, / am no hedonist. ' ' Sharlee retired to look up hedonist in the dictionary. Later that evening, Mrs. Weyland and her daughter being together upstairs, the former said : — 272 OUEED "Sharlee, who is this Mr. Queed that you paid so much attention to on the porch this evening?" "Why, don't you know, mother? He is the assistant ed- itor of the Post, and is going to be editor just the minute Mr. West retires. For you see, mother, everybody says that he writes the most wonderful articles, although I assure you, a year ago — " "Yes, but who is he? Where does he come from? Who are his people?" "Oh, I see. That is what you mean. Well, he comes from New York, where he led the most interesting literary sort of life, studying all the time, except when he was doing arti- cles for the great reviews, or helping a lady up there to write a thesaurus. You see, he was fitting himself to compose a great work — " "Who are his people?" "Oh, that!" said Sharlee. "Well, that question is not so easy to answer as you might think. It opens up a peculiar situation: to begin with, he is a sort of an orphan, and, — " "How do you mean, a sort of an orphan?" "You see, that is just where the peculiar part comes in. There is the heart of the whole mystery, and yet right there is the place where I must be reticent with you, mother, for though I know all about it, it was told to me confidentially — professionally, as my aunt's agent — and therefore — " " Do you mean that you know nothing about his people?" "I suppose it might be stated, crudely, in that way, but—" "And knowing nothing about who or what he was, you simply picked him up at the boarding-house, and admitted him to your friendship?" " Picking-up is not the word that the most careful mothers employ, in reference to their daughters' attitude toward young men. Mother, don't you understand? I 'ma demo- crat." " It is not a thing," said Mrs. Weyland, with some asper- ity, "for a lady to be." QUEED 273 Sharlee, fixing her hair in the back before the mirror, laughed long and merrily. "Do you dare — do you dare look your own daughter in the eye and say she is no lady?" "Do you like this young man?" Mrs. Weyland continued. "He interests me, heaps and heaps." Mrs. Weyland sighed. "I can only say," she observed, sinking into a chair and picking up her book, "that such goings on were never heard of in my day." XXII In which Professor Nicolovius drops a Letter on. the Floor, and Queed conjectures that Happiness sometimes comes to Men wearing a Strange Face. QUEED sat alone in the sitting-room of the Duke of Gloucester Street house. His afternoon's experiences had interested him largely. By subtle and occult processes which defied his analysis, what he had seen and heard had proved mysteriously disturbing — all this out- pouring of irrational sentiment in which he had no share. So had his conversation with the girl disturbed him. He was in a condition of mental unrest, undefined but acute; odds and ends of curious thought kicked about within him, challenging him to follow them down to unexplored depths. But he was paying no attention to them now. He sat in the sitting-room, wondering how Nicolovius had ever happened to think of that story about the Fenian refugee. For Queed had been gradually driven to that unpleasant point. While living in the old man's house, he was, despite his conscientious efforts, virtually spying upon him. The Fenian story had always had its questionable points; but so long as the two men were merely chance fellow-board- ers, it did as well as any other. Now that they lived together, however, the multiplying suggestions that the old profes- sor was something far other than he pretended became rather important. The young man could not help being aware that Nicolovius neither looked nor talked in the slightest degree like an Irishman. He could not help being certain that an Irishman who had fled to escape punishment for a political crime, in 1882, could have safely returned to his country long ago; and would undoubtedly have kept up relations with QUEED 275 his friends overseas in the meantime. Nor could he help being struck with such facts as that Nicolovius, while apparently little interested in the occasional cables about Irish affairs, had become seemingly absorbed in the three days' doings of the United Confederate Veterans. Now it was entirely all right for the old man to have a secret, and keep it. There was not the smallest quarrel on that score. But it was not in the least all right for one man to live with another, pretending to believe in him, when in reality he was doubting and questioning him at every move. The want of candor involved in his present relations with Nicolovius continually fretted Queed's conscience. Ought he not in common honesty to tell the old man that he could not believe the Irish biography, leaving it to him to decide what he wanted to do about it? Nicolovius, tramping in only a few minutes behind Queed, greeted his young friend as blandly as ever. Physically, he seemed tired; much dust of city streets clung to his com- monly spotless boots ; but his eyes were so extraordinarily brilliant that Queed at first wondered if he could have been drinking. However, this thought died almost as soon as it was born. The professor walked over to the window and stood looking out, hat on head. Presently he said: "You saw the grand parade, I suppose? For indeed there was no escaping it." Queed said that he had seen it. "You had a good place to see it from, I hope?" Excellent; Miss Weyland's porch. "Ah!" said Nicolovius, with rather an emphasis, and per- mitted a pause to fall. "A most charming young lady — - charming," he went on, with his note of velvet irony which the young man peculiarly disliked. "I hear she is to marry your Mr. West. An eminently suitable match in every way. Yet I shall not soon forget how that delightful young man defrauded you of the editorship." Silence from Mr. Queed, the question of the editorship having already been thoroughly threshed out between them. 876 OUEED "I, too, saw the gallant proceedings," resumed Nicolo- vius, retracing his thought. "What an outfit! What an out- fit!" He dropped down into his easy chair by the table, removed his straw hat with traces of a rare irritation in his manner, put on his black skull cap, and presently purred his thoughts aloud : — "No writer has yet done anything like justice to the old soldier cult in the post-bellum South. Doubtless it may lie out of the province of you historians, but what a theme for a new Thackeray! With such a fetish your priestcraft of the Middle Ages is not to be compared for a moment. There is no parallel among civilized nations ; to find one you must go to theVoodooism of the savage black. For more than a generation all the intelligence of the South has been asked, nay compelled, to come and bow down before these alms-begging loblollies. To refuse to make obeisance was treason. The entire public thought of a vast section of the country has revolved around the figure of a worthless old grafter in a tattered gray shirt. Every question is settled when some moth-eaten ne'er-do-well lets out what is known as a 'rebel yell.' The most polished and profound speech conceivable is answered when a jackass mounts the platform and brays out something about the gallant boys in gray. The cry for progress, for material advancement, for moral and social betterment, is stifled, that everybody may have breath to shout for a flapping trouser's leg worn by a de- graded old sot. All that your Southern statesmen have had to give a people who were stripped to the bone is fulsome rhetoric about the Wounded Warrior of Wahoo, or some other inflated nonentity, whereupon the mesmerized population have loyally fallen on their faces and shouted, 'Praise the Lord.' And all the while they were going through this wretched mummery, they were hungry and thirsty and naked — destitute in a smiling land of plenty. Do you won- der that I think old-soldierism is the meanest profession the Lord ever suffered to thrive? I tell you Baal and Moloch OUEED 277 never took such toll of their idolaters as these shabby old gods of the gray shirt." "Professor Nicolovius," said Queed, with a slow smile, "where on earth do you exhume your ideas of Southern his- tory?" "Observation, my dear boy ! God bless us, have n't I had three years of this city to use my eyes and ears in? And I had a peculiar training in my youth," he added, retrospectively, "to fit me to see straight and generalize accurately." . . . Could n't the man see that no persecuted Irishman ever talked in such a way since the world began? If he had a part to play, why in the name of common sense could n't he play it respectably? Queed got up, and began strollfng about the floor. In his mind was what Sharlee Weyland had said to him two hours before: "All the bitterness nowadays comes from the non- combatants, the camp-followers, the sutlers, and the cow- ards." Under which of these heads did his friend, the old professor, fall? . . . Why had he ever thought of Nico- lovius as, perhaps, a broken Union officer? A broken Union officer would feel bitter, if at all, against the Union. A man who felt so bitter against the South — A resolution was rapidly hardening in the young man's mind. He felt this attitude of doubt and suspicion, these thoughts that he was now thinking about the man whose roof he shared, as an unclean spot upon his chaste pas- sion for truth. He could not feel honest again until he had wiped it off. . . . And, after all, what did he owe to Nicolovius? "But I must not leave you under the impression," said Nicolovius, almost testily for him, "that my ideas are unique and extraordinary. They are shared, in fact, by Southern historians of repute and — " Queed turned on him. "But you never read Southern historians." Nicolovius had a smile for that, though his expression seemed subtly to shift. "I must make confession to you. 278 OUEED Three days ago, I broke the habits of quarter of a century. At the second-hand shop on Centre Street I bought, actually, a little volume of history. It is surprising how these Southern manifestations have interested me." Queed was an undesirable person for any man to live with who had a secret to keep. His mind was relentlessly con- structive; it would build you up the whole dinosaur from the single left great digitus. For apparently no reason at all, there had popped into his head a chance remark of Major Brooke's a year ago, which he had never thought of from that day to this: "I can't get over thinking that I've seen that man before a long time ago, when he looked entirely different, and yet somehow the same too." "I will show you my purchase," added Nicolovius, after a moment of seeming irresolution. He disappeared down the hall to his bedroom, a retreat in which Queed had never set foot, and returned promptly carrying a dingy duodecimo in worn brown leather. As he entered the room, he absently raised the volume to his lips and blew along the edges. Queed 's mental processes were beyond his own control. "Three days old," flashed into his mind, "and he blows dust from it." "What is the book?" he asked. "A very able little history of the Reconstruction era in this State. I have a mind to read you a passage and convert you." Nicolovius sat down, and began turning the pages. Queed stood a step away, watching him intently. The old man fluttered the leaves vaguely for a moment ; then his expres- sion shifted and, straightening up, he suddenly closed the book. "I don't appear to find," he said easily, "the little pas- sage that so impressed me the day before yesterday. And after all, what would be the use of reading it to you? You im- petufflus young men will never listen to the wisdom of your elders." OUEED 279 Smiling blandly, the subject closed, it might have been for- ever, Nicolovius reached out toward the table to flick the ash from his cigarette. In so doing, as luck had it, he struck the book and knocked it from his knees. Something shook from its pages as it dropped, and fell almost at Queed's feet. Mechanically he stooped to pick it up. It was a letter, at any rate an envelope, and it had fallen face up, full in the light of the open window. The envelope bore an address, in faded ink, but written in a bold legible hand. Not to save his soul could Queed have avoided seeing it : Henry G. Surface, Esq., j6 Washington Street. There was a dead silence: a silence that from matter-of- fact suddenly became unendurable. Queed handed the envelope to Nicolovius. Nicolovius glanced at it, while pretending not to, and his eyelash flick- ered; his face was about the color of cigar ashes. Queed walked away, waiting. He expected that the old man would immediately demand whether he had seen that name and address, or at least would immediately say something. But he did nothing of the sort. When Queed turned at the end of the room, Nicolovius was fluttering the pages of his book again, apparently absorbed in it, apparently quite forgetting that he had just laid it aside. Then Queed understood. Nicolovius did not mean to say or do anything. He meant to pass over the little inci- dent altogether. However, the pretense had now reached a point when Queed could no longer endure it. "Perhaps, after all," said Nicolovius, in his studiously bland voice, " I am a little sweeping — " Queed stood in front of him, interrupting, suddenly not at ease. "Professor Nicolovius." "Yes?" "I must say something that will offend you, I'm afraid. 28o OUEED For some time I have found myself unable to believe the — story of your life you were once good enough to give me." "Ah, well," said Nicolovius, engrossed in his book, "it is not required of you to believe it. We need have no quarrel about that." Suddenly Queed found that he hated to give the stab, but he did not falter. " I must be frank with you, professor. I saw whom that envelope was addressed to just now." "Nor need we quarrel about that." But Queed 's steady gaze upon him presently grew un- bearable, and at last the old man raised his head. "Well? Whom was it addressed to?" Queed felt disturbingly sorry for him, and, in the same thought, admired his iron control. The old professor's face was gray; his very lips were colorless; but his eyes were steady, and his voice was the voice of every day. "I think," said Queed, quietly, "that it is addressed to you." There was a lengthening silence while the two men, mo- tionless, looked into each other's eyes. The level gaze of each held just the same look of faint horror, horror subdued and controlled, but still there. Their stare became fascinated ; it ran on as though nothing could ever happen to break it off. To Queed it seemed as if everything in the world had dropped away but those brilliant eyes, frightened yet unafraid, bor- ing into his. Nicolovius broke the silence. The triumph of his intelli- gence over his emotions showed in the fact that he attempted no denial. "Well?" he said somewhat thickly. "Well? — Well?" Under the look of the younger man, he was beginning to break. Into the old eyes had sprung a deadly terror, a look as though his immortal soul might hang on what the young man was going to say next. To answer this look, a blind im- pulse in Queed bade him strike out, to say or do something; OUEED 28x and his reason, which was always detached and Impersonal, was amazed to hear his voice saying: — " It 's all right, professor. Not a thing is going to happen." The old man licked his lips. "You . . . will stay on here?" And Queed's voice answered: "As long as you want me." Nicolovius, who had been born Surface, suffered a mo- ment of collapse. He fell back in his chair, and covered his face with his hands. The dying efforts of the June sun still showed in the pretty sitting-room, though the town clocks were striking seven. From without floated in the voices of merry passers; eddies of the day's celebration broke even into this quiet street. Queed sat down in a big-armed rocker, and looked out the window into the pink west. So, in a minute's time and by a wholly chance happening, the mystery was out at 4ast. Professor Nicolovius, the bland recluse of Mrs. Paynter's, and Henry G. Surface, political arch-traitor, ex-convict, and falsest of false friends, were one and the same man. The truth had been instantly plain to Queed when the name had blazed up at him from the envelope on the floor. It was as though Fate herself had tossed that envelope under his eyes, as the answer to all his questionings. Not an in- stant's doubt had troubled him ; and now a score of memories were marshaling themselves before him to show that his first flashing certainty had been sound. As for the book, it was clearly from the library of the old man's youth, kept and hidden away for some reason, when nearly everything else had been destroyed. Between the musty pages the accusing letter had lain forgotten for thirty years, waiting for this moment. He turned and glanced once at the silent figure, huddled back in the chair with covered eyes; the unhappy old man whom nobody had ever trusted without regretting it. Henry G. Surface — whose name was a synonym for those traits ,and things which honest men of all peoples and climes have 282 OUEED always hated most, treachery, perfidy, base betrayal of trust, shameful dishonesty — who had crowded the word infamy from the popular lexicon of politics with the keener, more biting epithet, Surfaceism. And here — wonder of wonders — sat Surface before him, drawn back to the scene of his fall like a murderer to the body and the scarlet stain upon the floor, caught, trapped, the careful mask of many years plucked from him at a sudden word, leaving him no covering upon earth but his smooth white hands. And he, Queed, was this man's closest, his only friend, chosen out of all the world to live with him and minister to his declin- ing years. . . . "It's true!" now broke through the concealing hands, "I am that man. . . . God help me!" Queed looked unseeingly out of the window, where the sun was couching in a bed of copper flame stippled over with brightest azure. Why had he done it? What crazy prompting had struck from him that promise to yoke his destiny forever with this terrible old man? If Nicolovius, the Fenian refugee, had never won his liking. Surface, the Satan apostate, was detestable to him. What devil of im- pulse had trapped from him the mad offer to spend his days in the company of such a creature, and in the shadow of so odious an ill-fame? As on the day when Fifi had asked him her innocent ques- tion about altruism, a sudden tide swept the young man's thoughts inward. And after them, this time, groped the blundering feet of his spirit. Here was he, a mature man, who, in point of work, in all practical and demonstrable ways, was the millionth man. He was a great editorial writer, which was a minor but genuine activity. He was a yet greater writer on social science, which was one of the supreme activities. On this side, then, certainly the chief side, there could be no question about the successfulness of his life. His working life was, or would be before he was through, brilliantly successful. But it had for some time been plain to him that he stopped short OUEED 283 there. He was a great workman, but that was all. He was a superb rationalist ; but after that he did not exist. Through the science of Human Intercourse, he saw much more of people now than he had ever done before, and thus it had become driven home upon him that most people had two lives, their outer or practical lives, and their inner or personal lives. But he himself had but one life. He was a machine; a machine which turned out matchless work for the enlightenment of the world, but after all a machine. He was intellect. He was Pure Reason. Yet he himself had said, and written, that intellectual supremacy was not the true badge of supremacy of type. There was nothing sure of races that was not equally sure of the individuals which make up those races. Yet intellect was all he was. Vast areas of thought, feeling, and conduct, in which the people around him spent so much of their time, were entirely closed to him. He had no personal life at all. That part of him had atrophied from lack of use, like the eyes of the mole and of those sight- less fishes men take from the waters of caverns. And now this part of him, which had for some time been stirring uneasily, had risen suddenly without bidding of his and in defiance of his reason, and laid hold of something in his environment. In doing so, it appeared to have thrust upon him an inner, or personal, life from this time forward. That life lay in being of use to the old man before him: he who had never been of personal use to anybody so far, and the miserable old man who had no comfort anywhere but in him. He knew the scientific name of this kind of behavior very well. It was altruism, the irrational force that had put a new face upon the world. Fifi, he remembered well, had as- sured him that in altruism he would find that fiercer happi- ness which was as much better than content as being well was better than not being sick. But . . . could this be happiness, this whirling confusion that put him to such straits to keep a calm face above the tumult of his breast? If this was happiness, then it came to him for their first meeting wearing a strange face. . . . e84 QUEED "You know the story?" Queed moved in his chair. "Yes. I — have heard it." "Of course," said Nicolovius. "It is as well known as Iscariot's. By God, how they've hounded me!" Evidently he was recovering fast. There was bitterness, rather than shame, in his voice. He took his hands from his eyes, adjusted his cap, stiffened up in his chair. The sallow tints were coming back into his face ; his lips took on color ; his eye and hand were steady. Not every man could have passed through such a cataclysm and emerged so little marked. He picked up his cigarette from the table; it was still going. This fact was symbolic : the great shock had come and passed within the smoking of an inch of cigarette. The pretty room was as it was before. Pale sunshine still flick- ered on the swelling curtain. The leather desk-clock gayly ticked the passing seconds. The young man's clean-cut face looked as quiet as ever. Upon Queed the old man fastened his fearless black eyes. "I meant to tell you all this some day," he said, in quite a natural voice. " Now the day has come a little sooner than I had meant — that is all. I know that my confidence is safe with you — till I die." "I think you have nothing to fear by trusting me," said Queed, and added at once: "But you need tell me nothing unless you prefer." A kind of softness shone for a moment in Surface's eyes. "Nobody could look at your face," he said gently, "and ever be afraid to trust you." The telephone rang, and Queed could answer it by merely putting out his hand. It was West, from the ofifice, asking that he report for work that night, as he himself was com- pelled to be away. Presently Surface began talking; talking in snatches, more to himself than to his young friend, rambling back- ward over his broken life in passionate reminiscence. He talked a long time thus, while the daylight faded and dusk crept into the room, and then night; and Queed listened, giv- OUEED 285 ing him all the rein he wanted and saying never a word him- self. "... Pray your gods," said Surface, "that you never have such reason to hate your fellow-men as I have had, my boy. For that has. been the keynote of my unhappy life. God, how I hated them all, and how I do yet! . . . Not least Weyland, with his ostentatious virtue, his holier-than- thou kindness, his self-righteous magnanimity tossed even tome . . . the broken-kneed idol whom others passed with averted face, and there was none so poor to do me rever- ence. . . ." So this, mused Queed, was the meaning of the old pro- fessor's invincible dislike for Miss Weyland, which he had made so obvious in the boarding-house that even Mr. By- lash commented on it. He had never been able to forgive her father's generosity, which he had so terribly betrayed; , her name and her blood rankled and festered eternally in the heart of the faithless friend and the striped trustee. Henderson, the ancient African who attended the two men, knocked upon the shut door with the deprecatory an- nouncement that he had twice rung the supper-bell. "Take the things back to the kitchen, Henderson," said Queed. " I '11 ring when we are ready." The breeze was freshening, blowing full upon Surface, who did not appear to notice it. Queed got up and lowered the window. The old man's neglected cigarette burned his fin- gers; he lit another; it, too, burned itself down to the cork- Jip without receiving the attention of a puff. Presently he went on talking: " I was of a high-spirited line. Thank God, I never learned to fawn on the hand that lashed me. Insult I would not brook. I struck back, and when I struck, I struck to kill. — Did I not? So hard that the State reeled. ... So hard that if I had had something better than mean negroes and worse whites for my tools, fifth-rate scavengers, buzzards of politics . . . this hand would have written the history of the State in these forty years. 386 OUEED "That was the way I struck, and how did they answer me? — Ostracism . . . Coventry . . . The weapons of mean old women, and dogs. . . . The dogs! That is what they were. . . . "Well, other arms were ready to receive me. Others were fairer-minded than the cowardly bigots who could blow hot or cold as their selfish interests and prostituted leaders whispered. I was not a man to be kept down. Oh, my new friends were legion, and I was king again. But it was never the same. In that way, they beat me. I give them that. . . . Not they, though. It was deep calling to deep. My blood — heritage — tradition — education — all that I was . . . this was what tortured me with what was gone, and kept calling. "Wicked injustice and a lost birthright. . . . Oh, memory was there to crucify me, by day and by night. And yet . . . Why, it was a thing that is done every day by men these people say their prayers to. . . . Oh, yes — I wanted to punish — him for his smug condescension, his patronizing playing of the good Samaritan. And through him all these others . . . show them that their old idol wore claws on those feet of clay. But not in that way. No, a much cleverer way than that. Perhaps there would be no money when they asked for it, but I was to smile blandly and go on about my business. They were never to reach me. But the Surfaces were never skilled at juggling dirty money. . . . " They took me off my guard. The most technical fault — a trifle. . . . Another day or two and everything would have been all right. They had my word for it — and you know how they replied. . . . The infamous tyranny of the majority. The greatest judicial crime in a decade, and they laughed. "So now I lie awake in the long nights with nine years of that to look back on. "Let my life be a lesson to you teaching you — if no- thing else — that it is of no use to fight society. They have a hopeless advantage, the contemptible advantage of num- bers, and they are not ashamed to use it. . . .But my spirit OUEED 287 would not let me lie quiet under injury and insult. I was ever a fighter, born to die with my spurs on. And when I die at last, they will find that I go with a Parthian shot . . . and after all have the last word. "So I came out into a bright world again, an old man before my time, ruined forever, marked with a scarlet mark to wear to my grave. . . . "And then in time, as of course it would, the resolve came to me to come straight back here to die. A man wants to die among his own people. They were all that ever meant anything to me — they have that to boast of. ... I loved this city once. To die an3rwhere else . . . why, it was mean- ingless, a burlesque on death. I looked at my face in the glass ; my own mother would not have known me. And so I came straight to Jennie Paynter's, such was my whim . . . whom I held on my knee fifty years ago. "... Oh, it's been funny ... so funny. ... to sit at that intolerable table, and hear poor old Brooke on Recon- struction. "And I've wondered what little Jennie Paynter would do, if I had risen on one of these occasions and spoken my name to the table. How I 've hated her — hated the look and sight of her — and all the while embracing it for dear life. She has told me much that she never knew I listened to — many a bit about old friends . . . forty years since I 'd heard their names. And Brooke has told me much, the doting old ass. "But the life grew unbearable to a man of my temper. I could afford the decency of privacy in my old age. For I had worked hard and saved since. . . . "And then you came ... a scholar and a gentleman." It was quite dark in the room. Surface's voice had sud- denly changed. The bitterness faded out of it; it became gentler than Queed had ever heard it. "I did not find you out at once. My life had made me unsocial — and out of the Nazareth of that house I never looked for any good to come. But when once I took note of you, each day I saw you clearer and truer. I saw you fight- 288 OUEED ing, and asking no odds — for elbow-room to do your own work, for your way up on the newspaper, for bodily strength and health — everywhere I saw you, you were fighting in- domitably. I have always loved a fighter. You were young and a stranger, alone like me; you stirred no memories of a past that now, in my age, I would forget ; your face was the face of honor and truth. I thought : What a blessing if I could make a friend of this young man for the little while that is left me! . . . And you have been a blessing and a joy — more than you can dream. And now you will not cast me off, like the others. ... I do not know the words with which to try to thank you. ..." "Oh, don't," came Queed's voice hastily out of the dark. "There is no question of thanks here." He got up, lit the lamps, pulled down the shade. The old man lay back in his chair, his hands gripping its arms, the lamplight full upon him. Never had Queed seen him look less inspiring to affection. His black cap had gotten pushed to one side, which both revealed a considerable area of hair- less head, and imparted to the whole face an odd and rakish air; the Italian eyes did not wholly match with the softness of his voice; the thin-lipped mouth under the long auburn mustache looked neither sorrowful nor kind. It was Queed's lifelong habit never to look back with vain regrets; and he needed all of his resolution now. He stood in front of the man whose terrible secret he had surprised, and outwardly he was as calm as ever. "Professor Nicolovius," he said, with a faint emphasis upon the name, "all this is as though it had never passed between us. And now let's go and get some supper." Surface rose to his height and took Queed's hand in a grip like iron. His eyes glistened with sudden moisture. "God bless you, boy! You 're a maw/" It had been a memorable conversation in the life of both men, opening up obvious after-lines of more or less moment- ous thought. Yet each of them, as it happened, neglected OUEED 289 these lines for a corollary detail of apparently much less seri- ousness, and pretty nearly the same detail at that. For Sur- face sat long that evening, meditating how he might most surely break up the friendship between his young friend and Sharlee Weyland; while Queed, all during his busy hours at the office, found his thoughts of Nicolovius dominated by speculations as to what Miss Weyland would say, if she knew that he had formed a lifelong compact with the man who had betrayed her father's friendship and looted her own fortune. XXIII Of the Bill for the Reformatory, and its Critical Situation; of West's Second Disappointment with the Rewards of Patriot- ism; of the Consolation he found in the most Charming Re- solve in the World. IN January the legislature met again. All autumn and early winter the Post had been pounding without sur- cease upon two great issues : first, the reform of the tax- laws, and, second, the establishment of a reformatory insti- tution for women. It was palpably the resolve of the paper that the legislature should not overlook these two measures through lack of being shown where its duty lay. To the assistant editor had been assigned both campaigns, and he had developed his argument with a deadly persistence. A legislature could no more ignore him than you could ig- nore a man who is pounding you over the head with a bed- slat. Queed had proved his cases in a dozen ways, histor- ically and analogically, politically, morally, and scientifically, socially and sociologically. Then, for luck, he proceeded to run through the whole list again a time or two; and now faithful readers of the Post cried aloud for mercy, ask- ing each other what under the sun had got into the paper that it thus massacred and mutilated the thrice-slain. But the Post, aided by the press of the State which had been captivated by its ringing logic, continued its merciless fire, and, as it proved, not insanely. For when the legislature came together, it turned out to be one of those "economy" sessions, periodically thrust down the throats of even the wiliest politicians. Not "progress " was its watchword, but "wise retrenchment." Every observer of events, espe- cially in states where one party has been long in control, is familiar with these recurrent manifestations. There is a long OUEED 291 period of systematic reduplication of the offices, multiplying generosity to the faithful, and enormous geometrical pro- gression of the public payroll. Some mishap, one day, focuses attention upon the princely totalities of the law-mak- ing spenders, and a howl goes up from the "sovereigns," who, as has been wisely observed, never have any power until they are mad. The party managers, always respectful to an angry electorate, thereupon announce that, owing to the wonder- ful period of progress and expansion brought about by their management, the State can afford to slow up for a brief period, hold down expenses and enjoy its (party-made) pros- perity. This strikes the "keynote" for the next legislature, which pulls a long face, makes a tremendous noise about "economy," and possibly refrains from increasing expenses, or even shades them down about a dollar and a half. Flushed with their victory, the innocent sovereigns return, Cincin- natus-wise, to their plows, and the next session of the legis- lature, relieved of that suspicionful scrutiny so galling to men of spirit, proceeds to cut the purse-strings loose with a whoop. Such a brief spasm had rtow seized the State. Expenses had doubled and redoubled with a velocity which caused even hardened prodigals to view with alarm. The number of com- missions, boards, assistant inspectors, and third deputy clerks was enormous, far larger than anybody realized. If you could have taken a biological cross-section through the seat of State Government, you would doubtless have dis- covered a most amazing number of unobtrusive gentlemen with queer little titles and odd little duties, sitting silent and sleek under their cover; their hungry little mouths affixed last year to the public breast, or two years ago, or twenty, and ready to open in fearful wailing if anybody sought to pluck them off. In an aggregate way, attention had been called to them during the gubernatorial campaign of the summer. Attacks from the rival stump had, of course, been successfully " answered " by the loyal leaders and party press. But the bare statement of the annual expenditures, as com- pared with the annual expenditures of ten years ago, neces- 292 OUEED sarlly stood, and in cold type it looked bad. Therefore the legislature met now for an "economy session." The public was given to understand that every penny would have to give a strict account of itself before it would receive a pass from the treasury, and that public institutions, asking for in- creased support, could consider themselves lucky if they did not find their appropriations scaled down by a fourth or so. The Post's tax reform scheme went through with a bang. Out of loose odds and ends of vague discontent, Queed had succeeded in creating a body of public sentiment that be- came invincible. Moreover, this scheme cost nothing. On the contrary, by a rearrangement of items and a stricter system of assessment, it promised, as the Post frequently remarked, to put hundreds of thousands into the treasury. But the re- formatory was a horse of a totally different color. Here was a proposal, for a mere supposititious moral gain, evanescent as air, to take a hundred thousand dollars of hard money out of the crib, and saddle the State with an annual obliga- tion, to boot. An excellent thing in itself, but a most unrea- sonable request of an economy session, said the organization leaders. In fact, this hundred thousand dollars happened to be precisely the hundred thousand dollars they needed to lubricate "the organization," and discharge, by some choice new positions, a few honorable obligations incurred during the campaign. Now it was written in the recesses of the assistant edi- tor's being, those parts of him which he never thought of mentioning to anybody, that the reformatory bill must pass. Various feelings had gradually stiffened an early general ap- proval into a rock-ribbed resolve. It was on a closely allied theme that he had first won his editorial spurs — the theme of Klinker's " blaggards," who made reformatories necessary. That was one thing : a kind of professional sentiment which the sternest scientist need not be ashamed to acknowledge. And then, beyond that, his many talks with Klinker had in- vested the campaign for the reformatory with a warmth of meaning which was without precedent in his experience. QUEED 293 This was, in fact, his first personal contact with the suffering and sin of the world, his first grapple with a social problem in the raw. Two years before, when he had offered to write an article on this topic for the Assistant Secretary of Chari- ties, his interest in a reformatory had been only the scientific interest which the trained sociologist feels in all the enginery of social reform. But now this institution had become in- dissolubly connected in Queed's mind with the case of Eva Bernheimer, whom Buck Klinker knew, Eva Bernheimer who was "in trouble" at sixteen, and had now "dropped out." A reformatory had become in his thought a living in- strument to catch the Eva Bernheimers of this world, and effectually prevent them from dropping out. And apart from all this, here was the first chance he had ever had to do a service for Sharlee Weyland. However, the bill stuck obstinately in committee. Now the session was more than half over, February was nearly gone, and there it still stuck. And when it finally came out, it was evidently going to be a toss of a coin whether it would be passed by half a dozen votes, or beaten by an equal num- ber. But there was not the slightest doubt that the great ma- jority of the voters, so far as they were interested in it at all, wanted it passed, and the tireless Post was prodding the committee every other day, observing that now was the time, etc. , and demanding in a hundred forceful ways, how about it? With cheerfulness and confidence had West intrusted these important matters to his young assistant. Not only was Queed an acknowledged authority on both taxation and penological science, but he had enjoyed the advantage of writing articles on both themes under Colonel Cowles's per- sonal direction. The Colonel's bones were dust, his pen was rust, his soul was with the saints, we trust; but his gallant spirit went marching on. He towered out of memory a demi- god, and what he said and did in his lifetime had become as the law of the Medes and Persians now. But there was never any dispute about the division of edi- torial honors on the Post, anyway. The two young men, in 294 OUEED fact, were so different in every way that their relations were a model of mutual satisfaction. Never once did Queed's popular chief seek to ride over his valued helper, or deny him his full share of opportunity in the department. If anything, indeed, he leaned quite the other way. For West lacked the plodder's faculty for indefatigable application. Like some rare and splendid bird, if he was kept too closely in captiv- ity, his spirit sickened and died. It is time to admit frankly that West, upon closer con- tact with newspaper work, had been somewhat disillusioned, and who that knows will be surprised at that? To begin with, he had been used to much freedom, and his new duties were extremely confining. They began soon after breakfast, and no man could say at what hour they would end. The night work, in especial, he abhorred. It interfered with much more amusing things that had hitherto beguiled his even- ings, and it also conflicted with sleep, of which he required a good deal. There was, too, a great amount of necessary but most irksome drudgery connected with his editorial labors. Because the Post was a leader of public thought in the State, and as such enjoyed a national standing, West found it ne- cessary to read a vast number of papers,to keep up with what was going on. He was also forced to write many perfunctory articles on subjects which did not interest him in the least, and about which, to tell the truth, he knew very little. There were also a great many letters either to be answered, or to be prepared for publication in the People's Forum column, and these letters were commonly written by dull asses who had no idea what they were talking about. Prosy people were always coming in with requests or complaints, usually the latter. First and last there was a quantity of grinding detail which, like the embittered old fogeyism ol the Blaines College trustees, had not appeared on his rosy prospect in the Maytime preceding. With everything else favorable. West would cheerfully have accepted these things, as being inextricably embedded in the nature of the work. But unfortunately, everything else OUEED 295 was not favorable. Deeper than the grind of the routine de- tail, was the constant opposition and adverse criticism to which his newspaper, like every other one, was incessantly subjected. It has long been a trite observation that no reader of any newspaper is so humble as not to be outspokenly con- fident that he could run that paper a great deal better than those who actually are running it. Every upstanding man who pays a cent for a daily journal considers that he buys the right to abuse it, nay incurs the manly duty of abusing it. Every editor knows that the highest praise he can expect is silence. If his readers are pleased with his remarks, they nobly refrain from comment. But if they disagree with one jot or tittle of his high-speed dissertations, he must be pre- pared to have quarts of ink squirted at him forthwith. Now this was exactly the reverse of Editor. West's pre- ferences. He liked criticism of him to be silent, and praise of him to be shouted in the market-place. For all his good- humor and poise, the steady fire of hostile criticism fretted him intensely. He did not like to run through his exchanges and find his esteemed contemporaries combatting his posi- tions, sometimes bitterly or contemptuously, and always, so it seemed to him, unreasonably and unfairly. He did not like to have friends stop him on the street to ask why in the name of so-and-so he had said such-and-such ; or, more trying still, have them pass him with an icy nod, simply be- cause he, in some defense of truth and exploitation of the uplift, had fearlessly trod upon their precious little toes. He did not like to have his telephone ring with an angry protest, or to get a curt letter from a railroad president ( supposedly a good friend of the paper's) desiring to know by return mail whether the clipping therewith inclosed represented the Post's attitude toward the railroads. A steady proces- sion of things like these wears on the nerves of a sensitive man, and West, for all his confident exterior, was a sensitive man. A heavy offset in the form of large and constant pub- lic eulogies was needed to balance these annoyances, and such an offset was not forthcoming. 296 queed; West was older now, a little less ready in his enthusiasms, a shade less pleased with the world, a thought less sure of the eternal merits of the life of uplift. In fact he was thirty-three years old, and he had moments, now and then, when he won- dered if he were going forward as rapidly and surely as he had a right to expect. This was the third position he had had since he left college, and it was his general expectation to graduate into a fourth before a great while. Semple fre- quently urged him to return to the brokerage business; he had made an unquestioned success there at any rate. As to Blaines College, he could not be so confident. The college had opened this year with an increased enrollment of twenty- five ; and though West privately felt certain that his succes- sor was only reaping where he himself had sown, you could not be certain that the low world would so see it. As for the Post, it was a mere stop-gap, a momentary halting-place where he preened for a far higher flight. There were many times that winter when West wondered if Plonny Neal, whom he rarely or never saw, could possibly have failed to notice how prominently he was in line. But these doubts and dissatisfactions left little mark upon the handsome face and buoyant manner. Changes in West, if there were any, were of the slightest. Certainly his best friends, like those two charming young women, Miss Weyland and Miss Avery, found him as delightful as ever. In these days. West's mother desired him to marry. After the cunning habit of women, she put the thought before him daily, under many an alluring guise, by a thousand en- gaging approaches. West himself warmed to the idea. He had drunk freely of the pleasures of single blessedness, under the most favorable conditions; was now becoming somewhat jaded with them; and looked with approval upon the prospect of a little nest, or indeed one not so little, duly equipped with the usual faithful helpmeet who should share his sorrows, joys, etc. The nest he could feather decently enough himself; the sole problem, a critical one in its way. OUEED 297 was to decide upon the helpmeet. West was neither college boy nor sailor. His heart was no harem of beautiful faces. Long since, he had faced the knowledge that there were but two girls in the world for him. Since, however, the church and the law allowed him but one, he must more drastically monogamize his heart; and this he found enormously diffi- cult. It was the poet's triangle with the two dear charmers over again. One blowy night in late February, West passed by the brown stone palace which Miss Avery's open-handed papa, from Mauch Chunk, occupied on a three years' lease with privilege of buying; and repaired to the more modest estab- lishment where dwelt Miss Weyland and her mother. The reformatory issue was then at the touch. The bill had come out of committee with a six-and-six vote ; rumor had it that it would be called up in the House within the week ; and it now appeared as though a push of a feather's weight might settle its fate either way. Sharlee and West spoke first of this. She was eagerly interested, and praised him warrhly for the interest and valuable help of the Post. Her confi- dence was unshaken that the bill would go through, though by a narrow margin. "The opposition is of the deadliest sort," she admitted, "because it is silent. It is silent because it knows that its only argument — all this economy talk — is utterly insin- cere. But Mr. Dayne knows where the opposition is — and the way he goes after it! Never believe any more that ministers can't lobby!" "Probably the root of the whole matter," offered West, easing himself back into his chair, "is that the machine fel- lows want this particular hundred thousand dollars in their business." " Is n't it horrid that men can be so utterly selfish? You don't think they will really venture to do that?" "I honestly don't know. You see I have turned it all over to Queed, and I confess I have n't studied it with anything like the care he has.'" 298 OUEED Sharlee, who was never too engrossed in mere subjects to notice people's tones, said at once : "Oh, I am sure they won't dare do it," and immediately changed the subject. "You are going to the German, of course?" "Oh, surely, unless the office pinches me." "You mustn't let it pinch you — the last of the year, heigho ! Did you hear about Robert Byrd and Miss — no, I won't give you her name — and the visiting girl?" "Never a word." "She's a thoroughly nice girl, but — well, not pretty, I should say, and I don't think she has had much fun here. Beverley and Robert Byrd were here the other night. Why zvill they hunt in pairs, do you know? I told Beverley that he positively must take this girl to the German. He quarreled and complained a good deal at first, but finally yielded like a dear boy. Then he seemed to enter in the nicest way into the spirit. of our altruistic design. He said that after he had asked the girl, it would be very nice if Robert should ask her too. He would be refused, of course, but the girl would have the pleasant feeling of getting a rush, .and Robert would boost his standing as a philanthropist, all with- out cost to anybody. Robert was good-natured, and fell in with the plan. Three days later he telephoned me, simply furious. He had asked the girl — you know he has n't been to a German for five years — and she accepted at once with tears of gratitude." "But how—?" "Of course Beverley never asked her. He simply trapped Robert, which he would rather do than anything else in the world." West shouted . ' ' Speaking of Germans, ' ' he said presently, "I am making up my list for next year — the early bird, you know. How many will you give me?" "Six." "Will you kindly sign up the papers to-night?" "No — my mother won't let me. I might sign up for one if you want me to." OUEED 299 "What possible use has your mother for the other iive that is better than giving them all to me?" "Perhaps she does n't want to spoil other men for me." West leaned forward, interest fully awakened on his charming face, and Sharlee watched him, pleased with her- self. It had occurred to her, in fact, that Mr. West was tired ; and this was the solemn truth. He was a man of large re- sponsibilities, with a day's work behind him and a night's work ahead of him. His personal conception of the way to occupy the precious interval did not include the conscien- tious talking of shop. Jaded and brain-fagged, what he de- sired was to be amused, beguiled, soothed, fascinated, even flattered a bit, mayhap. Sharlee's theory of hospitality was that a guest was entitled to any type of conversation he had a mind to. Having dismissed her own troubles, she now proceeded to make herself as agreeable as she knew how ; and he has read these pages to little purpose who does not know that that was very agreeable indeed. West, at least, appeared to think so. He lingered, charmed, until quarter past eleven o'clock, at which hour Mrs. Wey- land, in the room above, began to let the tongs and poker fall about with unmistakable significance ; and went out into the starlit night radiant with the certainty that his heart, after long wandering, had found its true mate at last. XXIV Sliarlee's Parlor on Another Evening; how One Caller outsat Two, and why; also, how Sharlee looked in her Mirror for a Long Time, and why. ON the very night after West made his happy discov- ery, namely on the evening of February 24, at about twenty minutes of nine, Sharlee Weyland's doorbell rang, and Mr. Queed was shown into her parlor. His advent was a complete surprise to Sharlee. For these nine months, her suggestion that he should call upon her had lain utterly neglected. Since the Reunion she had seen him but four times, twice on the street, and once at each of their offices, when the business of the reformatory had hap- pened to draw them together. The last of these meetings, which had been the briefest, was already six weeks old. In all of her acquaintance with him, extending now over two years and a half, this was the first time that he had ever sought her out with intentions that were, presumably, de- liberately social. The event, Sharlee felt in greeting him, could not have happened, more unfortunately. Queed found the parlor oc- cupied, and the lady's attention engaged, by two young men before him. One of them was Beverley Byrd, who saluted him somewhat moodily. The other was a Mr. Miller — no relation to Miss Miller of Mrs. Paynter's, though a faint something in his ensemble lent plausibility to that conjec- ture — a newcomer to the city who, having been introduced to Miss Weyland somewhere, had taken the liberty of call- ing without invitation or permission. It was impossible for Sharlee to be rude to anybody under her own roof, but it is equally impossible to describe her manner to Mr. Miller as exactly cordial. He himself was a cordial man, mustached OUEED 301 and anecdotal, who assumed rather more confidence than he actually felt. Beverley Byrd, who did not always hunt in pairs, had taken an unwonted dislike to him at sight. He did not consider him a suitable person to be calling on Sharlee, and he had been doing his best, with considerable deft- ness and success, to deter him from feeling too much at home. Byrd wore a beautiful dinner jacket. So did Mr. Miller, with a gray tie, and a gray, brass-buttoned vest, to boot. Queed wore his day clothes of blue, which were not so new as they were the day Sharlee first saw them, on the rustic bridge near the little cemetery. He had, of course, taken it for granted that he would find Miss Weyland alone. Never- theless, he did not appear disconcerted by the sudden dis- covery of his mistake, or even by Mr. Miller's glorious waistcoat; he was as grave as ever, but showed no signs of embarrassment. Sharlee caught herself observing him closely, as he shook hands with the two men and selected a chair for himself; she concluded that constant contact with the graces of Charles Gardiner West had not been without its effect upon him. He appeared decidedly more at his ease than Mr. Miller, for instance, and he had another valuable possession which that personage lacked, namely, the face of a gentleman. But it was too evident that he felt little sense of responsi- bility for the maintenance of the conversation. He sat back in a chair of exceptionable comfortableness, and allowed Beverley Byrd to discourse with him ; a privilege which Byrd exercised fitfully, for his heart was in the talk that Sharlee was dutifully supporting with Mr. Miller. Into this talk he resolutely declined to be drawn, but his ear was alert for opportunities — which came not infrequently — to thrust in a polished oar to the discomfiture of the intruder. Not that he would necessarily care to do it, but the runner could read Mr. Miller, without a glass, at one hundred paces* distance. He was of the climber type, a self-made man in the earlier and less inspiring stages of the making. Culture had 3oa OUEED a dangerous fascination for him. He adored to talk of books; a rash worship, it seemed, since his but bowing acquaii^tance with them trapped him frequently into mistaken identities over which Sharlee with difficulty kept a straight face, while Byrd palpably rejoiced. "You know Thanatopsis, of course," he would ask, with a rapt and glowing eye — "Lord Byron's beautiful poem on the philosophy of life? Now that is my idea of what poetry ought to be. Miss Weyland. ..." And Beverley Byrd, breaking his remark to Queed off short in the middle, would turn to Sharlee with a face of studious calm and say: — "Will you ever forget, Sharlee, the first time you read the other Thanatopsis — the one by William Cullen Bryant? Don't you remember how it looked — with the picture of Bryant — in the old Fifth Reader?" Mr. Miller proved that he could turn brick-red, but he learned nothing from experience. In time, the talk between the two young men, which had begun so desultorily, warmed up. Byrd had read something besides the Fifth Reader, and Queed had discovered before to-night that he had ideas to express. Their conversation, progressed with waxing interest, from the President's mes- sage to the causes of the fall of Rome, and thence by wholly logical transitions to the French Revolution and Woman's Suffrage. Byr.d gradually became so absorbed that he al- most, but not quite, neglected to keep Mr. Miller in his place. As for Queed, he spoke in defense of the "revolt of woman" for five minutes without interruption, and his mas- terly sentences finally drew the silence and attention of Mr. Miller himself. "Who is that fellow?" he asked in an undertone. "I did n't catch his name." Sharlee told him. "He's got a fine face," observed Mr. Miller. "I've made quite a study of faces, and I never saw one just like his — so absolutely on one note, if you know what I mean." OUEED 303 "What note is that?" asked Sharlee, interested by him for the only time so long as they both did live. "Well, it's not always easy to put a name to it, but I'd call it . . .. honesty. — // you know what I mean." Mr. Miller stayed until half-past ten. The door had hardly shut upon him when Byrd, too, rose. "Oh, don't go, Beverley!" protested Sharlee. /' I 've hardly spoken to you." "Duty calls," said Byrd. " I 'm going to walk home with Mr. Miller." " Beverley — don't! You were quite horrid enough while he was here." ■- "But you spoiled it all by being so unnecessarily agree- able! It is my business, as your friend and well-wisher, to see that he does n't carry away too jolly a memory of his visit. Take lunch downtown with me to-morrow, won't you, Mr. Queed — at the Business Men's Club? I want to finish our talk about the Catholic nations, and why they 're decadent." Queed said that he would, and Byrd hurried away to over- take Mr. Miller. Or,' perhaps that gentleman was only a pretext, and the young man's experienced eye had read that any attempt to outsit the learned assistant editor was fore- doomed to failure. "I'm so glad you stayed," said Sharlee, as Queed reseated himself. "I shouldn't have liked not to exchange a word with you on your first visit here." "Oh! This is not my first visit, you may remember." "Your first voluntary visit, perhaps I should have said." He let his eyes run over the room, and she could see that he was thinking, half-unconsciously, of the last time when he and she had sat here. "I had no idea of going," he said absently, "till I had the opportunity of speaking to you." A brief silence followed, which clearly did not embarrass him, at any rate. Sharlee, feeling the necessity of breaking it, still puzzling herself with speculations as to what had put it into his head to come, said at random: — 304 OUEED "Oh, do tell me — how is old P^re Goriot?" "P^re Goriot? I never heard of him." "Oh, forgive me ! It is a name we used to have, long ago, for Professor Nicolovius." A shadow crossed his brow. "He is extremely well, I be- lieve." "You are still glad that you ran off with him to live ttte- d,-ttte in a bridal cottage?" "Oh, I suppose so. Yes, certainly!" His frank face betrayed that the topic was unwelcome to him. For he. hated all secrets, and this secret, from this girl, was particularly obnoxious to him. And beyond all that part of it, how could he analyze for anybody his peri- ods of strong revolt against his association with Henry G. Surface, followed by longer and stranger periods when, 'quite apart from the fact that his word was given and regrets were vain, his consciousness embraced it as having a certain positive value ? He rose restlessly, and in rising his eye fell upon the little clock on the mantel. "Good heavens!" broke from him. "I had no idea it was so late! I must go directly. Directly." "Oh, no, you must n't think of it. Your visit to me has just begun — all this time you have been calling on Bever- ley Byrd." "Why do you think I came here to-night?" he asked abruptly. Sharlee, from her large chair, smiled, "/think to see me." "Oh! — Yes, naturally, but — " "Well, I think this is the call plainly due me from my Reunion party last year." "No ! Not at all ! At the same time, it has been since that day that I have had you on my mind so much." He said this in a perfectly matter-of-fact voice, but a cer- tain nervousness had broken through into his manner. He took a turn up and down the room, and returned suddenly to his seat. OUEED 305 "Oh, have you had me on your mind?" "Do you remember my saying that day," he began, res- olutely, " that I was not sure whether I had got the better of you or you had got the better of me?" "I remember very well." "Well, I have come to tell you that — you have won." He had plucked a pencil from the arsenal of them in his breast-pocket, and with it was beating a noiseless tattoo on his open left palm. With an effort he met her eyes. ' ' I say you were right, ' ' came from him nervously. ' ' Don't you hear?" "Was I? Won't you tell me just what you mean?" "Don't you know?" "Really I don't think I do. You see, when I used that expression that day, I was speaking only of the editorship — ' ' "But I was speaking of a theory of life. After all, the two things seem to have been bound together rather closely — just as you said." He restored his pencil to his pocket, palpably pulled him- self together, and proceeded : "Oh, my theory was wholly rational — far more rational than yours ; rationally it was perfect. It was a wholly log- ical recoil from the idleness, the lack of purpose, the slipshod self-indulgence under many names that I saw, and see, everjnvhere about me. I have work to do — serious work of large importance — and it seemed to me my duty to carry it through at all hazards. I need not add that it still seems so. Yet it was a life's work, already well along, and there was no need for me to pay an excessive price for mere speed. I elected to let everything go but intellect; I felt that I must do so; and in consequence, by the simplest sort of natural law, all the rest of me was shriveling up — had shriveled up, you will say. Yet I knew very well that my intellect was not the biggest part of me. I have always understood that. . . . Still, it seems that I required you to rediscover it for me in terms of everyday life. ..." "No, no!" she interrupted, "I did n't do that. Most of 306 OUEED it you did yourself. The start, the first push — don't you know? — it came from Fifi." "Well," he said slowly, "what was Fifi but you again in miniature?" "A great deal else," said Sharlee. Her gaze fell. She sunk her chin upon her hand, and a silence followed, while before the mind's eye of each rose a vision of Fifi, with her wasted cheeks and great eyes. "As I say, I sacrificed everything to reason," continued Queed, obviously struggling against embarrassment, "and yet pure reason was never my ideal. I have impressed you as a thoroughly selfish person — you have told me that — and so far as my immediate environment is concerned, I have been, and am. So it may surprise you to be told that a life of service has been from the beginning my ambition and my star. Of course I have always interpreted service in the broadest sense, in terms of the world ; that was why I deliber- ately excluded all purely personal applications of it. Yet it is from a proper combination of reason with — the sociolo- gist's 'consciousness of kind' — fellow-feeling, sympathy, if you prefer, that is derived a life of fullest efficiency. I have always understood the truth of this formula as applied to peoples. It seems that I — rather missed its force as to in- dividuals. I — I am ready to admit that an individual life can draw an added meaning — and richness from a serv- ice, not of the future, but of the present — not of the race but . . . well, of the unfortunate on the doorstep. Do you understand," he asked abruptly, "what I am trying to tell you?" She assured him that she understood perfectly. A slow painful color came into his face. "Then you appreciate the nature and the size of the debt I owe you." "Oh, no, no, no! If I have done anything at all to help you," said Sharlee, considerably moved, "then I am very glad and proud. But as for what you speak of . . . no, no. QUEED 307 people always do these things for themselves. The help comes from within — " "Oh, don't talk like that!" broke from him. "You throw out the idea somehow that I consider that I have undergone some remarkable conversion and transformation. I have n't done anything of the sort. I am just the same as I always was. Just the same. . . . Only now I am willing to admit, as a scientific truth, that time given to things not in them- selves directly productive, can be made to pay a good divi- dend. If what I said led you to think that I meant more than that, then I have, for once, expressed myself badly. I tell you this," he went on hurriedly, "simply because you once interested yourself in trying to convince me of the truth of these views. Some of the things you said that night man- aged to stick. They managed to stick. Oh, I give you that. I suppose you might say that they gradually became like mottoes or texts — not scientific, of course . . . personal. Therefore, I thought it only fair to tell you that while my cosmos is still mostly Ego — I suppose everybody's is in one way or another — I have — made changes, so that I am no longer wholly out of relation with life." "I am glad you wanted to tell me," said Sharlee, "but I have known it for — oh, the longest time." "In a certain sense," he hurried on — "quite a different sense — I should say that your talk — the only one of the kind I ever had — did for me the sort of thing . . . that most men's mothers do for them when they are young." She made no reply. "Perhaps," he said, almost defiantly, "you don't like my saying that?" "Oh, yes! I like it very much." "And yet," he said, "I don't think of you as I fancy a man would think of his mother, or even of his sister. It is rather extraordinary. It has become clear to me that you have obtained a unique place in my thought — in my re- gard. Well, good-night." 308 OUEED She looked up at him, without, however, quite meeting his eyes. "Oh! Do you think you must go?" "Well — yes. I have said everything that I came to say. Did you want me to stay particularly?" . " Not if you feel that you should n't. You 've been very good to give me a whole evening, as it is." " I '11 tell you one more thing before I go." He took another turn up and down the room, and halted frowning in front of her. " I am thinking of making an experiment in practical so- cial work next year. What would be your opinion of a free night-school for working boys?" Sharlee, greatly surprised by the question, said that the field was a splendid one. He went on at once: "Technical training, of course, would be the nominal basis of it. I could throw in, also, boxing and physical culture. Buck Klinker would be de- lighted to help there. By the way, you must know Klinker: he has some first-rate ideas about what to do for the working population. Needless to say, both the technical and phys- ical training would be only baits to draw attendance, though both could be made very valuable. My main plan is along a new line. I want to teach what no other school attempts — only one thing, but that to be hammered in so that it can never be forgotten." "What is that?" "You might sum it all up as the doctrine of individual responsibility." She echoed his term inquiringly, and he made a very large gesture. " I want to see if I can teach boys that they are not in- dividuals — not unrelated atoms in a random universe. Teach them that they live in a world of law — of evolution by law — that they are links, every one of them, in a splen- did chain that has been running since life began, and will run on to the end of time. Knock into their heads that no chain OUEED 309 is stronger than its weakest link, and that this means them. Don't you see what a powerful socializing force there is in the sense of personal responsibility, if cultivated in the right direction? A boy may be willing to take his chances on go- ing to the bad — economically and socially, as well as mor- ally — if he thinks that it is only his own personal concern. But he will hesitate when you once impress upon him that, in doing so, he is blocking the whole magnificent procession. My plan would be to develop these boys' social efficiency by stamping upon them the knowledge that the very humblest of them holds a trusteeship of cosmic importance." "I understand. . . . How splendid! — not to practice sociology on them, but to teach it to them — " "But could we get the boys?" She felt that the unconsciousness with which he took her into partnership was one of the finest compliments that had ever been paid her. "Oh, I think so! The Department has all sorts of con- nections, as well as lots of data which would be useful in that way. How Mr. Dayne will welcome you as an ally! And I, too. I think it is fine of you, Mr. Queed, so generous and kind, to — " "Not at all! Not in the least! I beg you," he interrupted, irritably, "not to go on misunderstanding me. I propose this simply as an adjunct to my own work. It is simply in the nature of a laboratory exercise. In five years the experiment might enable me to check up some of my own conclusions, and so prove very valuable to me." "In the meantime the experiment will have done a great deal for a certain number of poor boys — unfortunates on your doorstep. ..." "That," he said shortly, "is as it may be. But — " "Mr. Queed," said Sharlee, "why are you honest in every way but one? Why won't you admit that you have thought of this school because you would like to do something to help in the life of this town?" "Because I am not doing anything of the sort! Why will 3IO OUEED you harp on that one string? Good heavens! Aren't you yourself the author of the sentiment that a sociologist ought to have some first-hand knowledge of the problems of society?" Standing, he gazed down at her, frowning insistently, bent upon staring her out of countenance ; and she looked up at him with a Didymus smile which slowly grew. Presently his eyes fell. "I cannot undertake," he said, in his stiflfest way, "to analyze all my motives at all times for your satisfaction. They have nothing whatever to do with the present matter. The sole point up for discussion is the practical question of getting such a school started. Keep it in mind, will you? Give some thought as to ways and means. Your experience with the Department should be helpful to me in getting the plan launched." "Certainly I will. If you don't object, I'll talk with Mr. Dayne about it, too. He — " "All right. I don't object. Well, good-night." Sharlee rose and held out her hand. His expression, as he took and shook it, suddenly changed. " I suppose you think I have acquired the habit," he said, with an abrupt recurrence of his embarrassment, "of coming to you for counsel and assistance?" "Well, why should n't you?" she answered seriously. "I have had the opportunity and the time to learn some things—" "You can't dismiss your kindness so easily as that." "Oh, I don't think I have been particularly kind.", "Yes, you have. I admit that. You have." He took the conversation with such painful seriousness that she was glad to lighten it with a smile. "If you persist in thinking so, you might feel like reward- ing me by coming to see me soon again." "Yes, yes! I shall come to see you soon again. Certainly. Of course," he added hastily, "it is desirable that I should talk with you more at length about my school." OUEED 3" He was staring at her with a conflict of expressions in which, curiously enough, pained bewilderment seemed upper- most. Sharlee laughed, not quite at her ease. "Do you know, I am still hoping that some day you will come to see me, not to talk about anything definite — just to talk." "As to that," he replied, "I cannot say. Good-night." Forgetting that he had already shaken hands, he now went through with it again. This time the ceremony had unex- pected results. For now at the first touch of her hand, a sen- sation closely resembling chain-lightning sprang up his arm, and tingled violently down through all his person. It was as if his arm had not merely fallen suddenly asleep, but was singing uproariously in its slumbers. "I'm so glad you came," said Sharlee. He retired in a confusion which he was too untrained to hide. At the door he wheeled abruptly, and cleared him- self, with a white face, of evasions that were torturing his conscience. "I will not say that a probable benefit to the boys never entered into my thoughts about the school. Nor do I say that my next visit will be wholly to talk about definite things, as you put it. For part of the time, I daresay I should like — just to talk." Sharlee went upstairs, and stood for a long time gazing at herself in the mirror. Vainly she tried to glean from it the answer to a most interesting conundrum: Did Mr. Queed still think her very beautiful? XXV Recording a Discussion about the Reformatory between Editor West and his Dog-like Admirer, the City Boss; and a Briefer Conversation between West and Prof. Nicolovius's Boarder. A BOUT one o'clock the telephone rang sharply, and /-\ Queed, just arrived for the afternoon work and alone ■^ "^ in the ofiSce, answered it. It was the Rev. Mr. Dayne, Secretary of the Department of Charities; he had learned that the reformatory -bill was to be called up in the house next day. The double-faced politicians of the ma- chine, said Mr. Dayne, with their pretended zeal for econ- omy, were desperately afraid of the Post. Would Mr. Queed be kind enough to hit a final ringing blow for the right in to-morrow's paper? "That our position to-day is as strong as it is," said the kind, firm voice, "is due largely to your splendid work, Mr. Queed. I say this gladly, and advisedly. If you will put your shoulder to the wheel just once more, I am confident that you will push us through. I shall be eternally grateful, and so will the State. For it is a question of genuine moral import- ance to us all." Mr. Dayne received assurance that Mr. Queed would do all that he could for him. He left the telephone rather wishing that the assistant editor could sometimes be inspired into verbal enthusiasm. But of his abilities the Secretary did not entertain the smallest doubt, and he felt that day that his long fight for the reformatory was as good as won. Hanging up the receiver, Queed leaned back in his swivel chair and thoughtfully filled a pipe, which he smoked now- adays with an experienced and ripened pleasure. At once he relapsed into absorbed thought. Though he answered Mr. Dayne calmly and briefly according to his wont, the young QUEED 313 man's heart was beating faster with the knowledge that he stood at the crisis of his longest and dearest editorial fight. He expected to win it. The whole subject, from every con- ceivable point of view, was at his fingers' ends. He knew exactly what to say ; his one problem was how to say it in the most irresistible way possible. Yet Queed, tilted back in his chair, and staring out over the wet roofs, was not thinking of the reformatory. He was thinking, not of public matters at all, but of the circum- stances of his curious life with Henry G. Surface; and his thoughts were not agreeable in the least. Not that he and the "old professor" did not get along well together. It was really surprising how well they did get along. Their dynamic interview of last June had at once been buried out of sight, and since then their days had flowed along with unbroken smoothness. If there had been times when the young man's thought recoiled from the com- pact and the intimacy, his manner never betrayed any sign of it. On the contrary, he found himself mysteriously an- swering the growing dependence of the old man with a growing sense of responsibility toward him, and discovering in the process a curious and subtle kind of compensation. What troubled Queed about Nicolovius — as the world called him — was his money. He, Queed, was in part living on this money, eating it, drinking it, sleeping on it. Of late the old man had been spending it with increasing freedom, constantly enlarging the comforts of the joint manage. He had reached, in fact, a scale of living which continually thrust itself on Queed's consciousness as quite beyond the savings of a poor old school teacher. And if this appearance were true, where did the surplus come from? The question had knocked unpleasantly at the young man's mind before now. This morning he faced it, and pondered deeply. A way occurred to him by which, pos- sibly, he might turn a little light upon this problem. He did not care to take it; he shrank from doing anything that might seem like spying upon the man whose bread he broke 314 OUEED thrice daily. Yet it seemed to him that a point had now been reached where he owed his first duty to himself. "Come in," he said, looking around in response to a brisk knock upon his shut door; and there entered Plonny Neal, whom Queed, through the Mercury, knew very well now. "Hi there. Doc! Playin' you was Horace Greeley?" Mr. Neal opened the connecting door into West's office, glanced through, found it empty, and shut the door again. Whether he was pleased or the reverse over this discovery, his immobile countenance gave no hint; but the fact was that he had called particularly to see West on a matter of urgent private business. "I was on the floor and thought I'd say howdy," he re- marked pleasantly. "Say, Doc, I been readin' them reform- atory drools of yours. Me and all the boys." "I'm glad to hear it. They are certain to do you good." Queed smiled. He had a genuine liking for Mr. Neal, which was not affected by the fact that their views differed dia- metrically on almost every subject under the sun. Mr. Neal smiled, too, more enigmatically, and made a large gesture with his unlighted cigar. "I ain't had such good laughs since Tommy Walker, him that was going to chase me out of the city f 'r the tall timber, up and died. But all the same, I hate to see a likely young feller sittin' up nights tryin' to make a laughin' stock of him- self." "The last laughs are always the best, Mr. Neal. Did you ever try any of them?" "You're beat to a pappyer mash, and whistlin' to keep your courage." "Listen to my whistle day after to-morrow — " But the door had shut on Mr. Neal, who had doubtless read somewhere that the proper moment to terminate a call is on some telling speech of one's own. "I wonder what he's up to," mused Queed. He brought his chair to horizontal and addressed himself to his reformatory article. He sheu-pened his pencil ; tangled OUEED 315 his great hand into his hair; and presently put down an opening sentence that fully satisfied him, his own sternest critic. Then a memory of his visitor returned to his mind, and he thought pleasurably: "Plonny knows he is beaten. That's what's the matter with him." Close observers had often noted, however, that that was very seldom the matter with Plonny, and bets as to his being beaten were always to be placed with diffidence and at very long odds. Plonny had no idea whatever of being beaten on the reformatory measure : on the contrary, it was the reformatory measure which was to be beaten. Possibly Mr. Neal was a white-souled patriot chafing under threat- ened extravagance in an economy year. Possibly he was impelled by more machine-like exigencies, such as the need of just that hundred thousand dollars to create a few nice new berths for the "organization." The man's motives are an immaterial detail. The sole point worth remembering is that Plonny Neal had got it firmly in his head that there should be no reformatory legislation that year. It was Mr. Neal's business to know men, and he was es- teemed a fine business man. Leaving the assistant editor, he sallied forth to find the editor. It might have taken Queed an hour to put his hand on West just then. Plonny did it in less than six minutes. West was at Semple's (formerly Semple & West's), where he looked in once a day just to see what the market was doing. This was necessary, as he sometimes explained, in order that the Post's financial articles might have that au- thoritativeness which the paper's position demanded. West enjoyed the good man-talk at Semple's ; the atmosphere of frank, cheery commercialism made a pleasant relief from the rarer altitudes of the uplift. He stood chatting gayly with a group of habitues, including some of the best known men of the town. All greeted Plonny pleasantly, West cordially. None of our foreign critics can write that the American man is a moral prude. On two occasions, Plonny had been vin- 3i6 OUEED dicated before the grand jury by the narrow margin of one vote. Yet he was much liked as a human sinner who had no pretenses about him, and who told a good story surpassingly well. Ten minutes later Mr. Neal and Mr. West met in a pri- vate room at Berringer's, having arrived thither by different routes. Over a table, the door shut against all-comers, Mr. Neal went at once to the point, apologizing diffidently for a "butting in" which Mr. West might resent, but which he, Mr. West's friend, could no longer be restrained from. The Post, he continued, had been going along splendidly — " better 'n under Cowles even — everybody says so — " and then, to the sorrow and disappointment of the new ed- itor's admirers, up had come this dashed old reformatory business and spoiled everything. West, whose thoughts had unconsciously run back to his last private talk with Plonny — the talk about getting in line — good-naturedly asked his friend if he was really lined up with the wire-pulling moss-backs who were fighting the reformatory bill. "You just watch me and see," said Plonny, with humorous reproachfulness. "No charge f'r lookin', and rain checks given in case of wet grounds." "Then for once in your life, anyhow, you've called the turn wrong, Plonny. This institution is absolutely necessary for the moral and social upbuilding of the State. It would be necessary if it cost five times one hundred thousand dol- lars, and it's as sure to come as judgment day." "Ain't it funny!" mused Plonny. "Take a man like you, with fine high ideas and all, and let anything come up and pass itself off f'r a maw'l question and he'll go off half-cocked ten times out of ten." "Half-cocked!" laughed West. "We've been studjdng this question three years." "Yes, and began your studies with your minds all made up." Plonny fastened upon the young man a gaze in which OUEED 317 superior wisdom struggled unsuccessfully with overwhelm- ing affection. "You know what it is, Mr. West? You've been took in. You 've bit on a con game like a hungry pike. Excuse my speaking so plain, but I told you a long time ago I was mightily interested in you." "Speak as plain as you like, Plonny. In fact, my only re- quest at the moment is that you will speak plainer still. Who is it that has taken me in, and who is working this little con game you mention?" "Rev. George Dayne of the Charities," said Plonny at once. "You mentioned wire-pulling just now. Lemme tell you that in the Rev. George you got the champeen wire- puller of the lot, the king politician of them all — the only one in this town, I do believe, could have thrown a bag as neat over your head, Mr. West." "Why, Plonny! Much learning has made you mad! I know Dayne like a book, and he 's as straightforward a fel- low as ever lived." Mr. Neal let his eyes fall to the table-top and indulged in a slow smile, which he appeared to be struggling courteously, but without hope, to suppress. "O' course you got a right to your opinion, Mr. West." A brief silence ensued, during which a tiny imp of mem- ory whispered into West's ear that Miss Weyland herself had commented on the Rev. Mr. Dayne's marvelous gifts as a lobbyist. " I'm a older man than you," resumed Neal, with precari- ous smilelessness, "and mebbe I've seen more of practi- cal poltix. It would be a strange thing, you might say, if at my time of life, I did n't know a politician when I passed him in the road. Still, don't you take my word for it. I 'm only repeating what others say when I tell you that Parson Dayne wants to be Governor of this State some day. That surprises you a little, hey? You was kind of thinking that 'Rev.' changed the nature of a man, and that ambition never thought of keeping open f'r business under a high- cut vest, now was n't you? Well, I 've seen funny things in 3i8 OUEED my time. I 'd say that the parson wants this reformatory some f'r the good of the State, and mostly f'r the good of Mr. Dayne. Give it to him, with the power of appointing employees — add this to what he 's already got — and in a year he'll have the prettiest little private machine ever you did see. I don't ask you to believe me. All I ask is f'r you to stick a pin in what I say, and see 'f it don't come true. ' ' West mused, impressed against his will. "You're wrong, Plonny, in my opinion, and if you v.r6re ten times right, what of it? You seem to think that the Post is advocating this reformatory because Dayne has asked for it. The Post is doing nothing of the sort. It is advocating the reformatory because it has studied this question to the bottom for itself, because it knows — " "Right! Good f'r you!" exclaimed Mr. Neal, much gratified. " That's just what I tell the boys when they say you're playin' poltix with the little dominie. And that," said he, briskly, "is just why I'm for the reformatory, in spite of Rev. Dayne's little games." "You 're for it! You said just now that you were opposed to it." "Not to the reformatory, Mr. West. Not at all. I'm only opposed to spending a hundred thousand dollars for it in a poverty year." "Oh! You want the reformatory, but you don't want it now. That's where you stand, is it?" "Yes, and everybody else that understands just what the situation is. I believe in this reformatory — the Post con- verted me, that 's a fact — and if you '11 only let her stand two years, take my word for it, she'll go through with a whoop. But if you 're going to hurry the thing — " "What's your idea of hurry exactly? The war has been over forty years — " "And look how splendid we've got along these forty years without the reformatory! Will you care to say, Mr. West, that we could n't make it forty-two without bringing great danger to the State? " OUEED 319 "No, certainly not. But the point is — " "The point is that if we spend all this money now, the people will kick the party out at the next election. I would n't admit this to many, 'cause I 'm ashamed of it, but it 's gospel truth. Mr. West," said Plonny, earnestly, "I know you want the Post to stand for the welfare of the party — " "Certainly. And it has been my idea that evidence of sane interest in public morals was a pretty good card for — " "So it would be at any ordinary time. But it's mighty different when the people from one end of the State to the other are howling economy and saying that all expenses must go to bed-rock or they '11 know the reason why. There 's the practical side of it — look at it f 'r a minute. The legis- lature was elected by these people on a platform promising strictest economy. They 're tryin' to carry out their promise faithfully. They turn down and postpone some mighty good plans to advance the progress of the State. They rejuice salaries in various departments" — (one was the exact number) — "heelers come up lookin' f'r jobs, and they send 'em away empty-handed and sore. Old-established institu- tions, that have been doin' grand work upbuildin' the State f'r years, are told that they must do with a half or three quarters of their appropriations f'r the next two years. You've seen all this happen, Mr. West?" West admitted that he had. ' ' Well, now when everything is goin' smooth and promisin', you come along and tell 'em they got to shell out a hundred thousand dollars right away f'r a brand-new institution, with an annual appropriation to keep it up. Now s'pose they do what you tell 'em. What happens? You think there's no poltix at all in this reformatory business, but I can tell you the Republicans won't take such a view as that. They'll say that the party spent a hundred thousand dollars of the people's money in a hard times year, just to make a few more jobs f'r favorites. They'll throw that up at us from evei-y stump in the State. And when our leaders explain that it was 320 OUEED done for the maw'I good of the State, they '11 give us the laugh — same as they did when we established the Foundling Hospital in '98. Now I tell you the party can't stand any talk of that kind this year. We 're on shaky ground right now f 'r the same reason that we 're all so proud of — spendin' money f'r the maw'I uplift of the State. We either got to slow up f'r awhile or take a licking. That 's what all the talk comes down to — one simple question: Will we hold off this big expense f'r just two years, or will we send the old party down to defeat?" West laughed, not quite comfortably. In all this dialogue, Mr. Neal had over him the enormous advantage of exact and superior knowledge. To tell the truth, West knew very little about the reformatory situation, and considered it, among the dozens of matters in which he was interested, rather a small issue. Having turned the cam- paign over to his assistant, he had dismissed it from his mind; and beyond his general conviction that the reformatory would be a good thing for the State, he had only the sketchi- est acquaintance with the arguments that were being used pro and con. Therefore Plonny Neal's passionate earnest- ness surprised him, and Plonny 's reasoning, which he knew to be the reasoning of the thoroughly informed State lead- ers, impressed him very decidedly. Of the boss's sincerity he never entertained a doubt ; to question that candid eye was impossible. That Plonny had long been watching him with interest and admiration, West knew very well. It began to look to him very much as though Queed, through excess of sociological zeal, had allowed himself to be misled, and that the paper's advanced position was founded on theory without reference to existing practical conditions. West keenly felt the responsibility of his post. To safe- guard and promote the welfare of the Democratic party had long been a cardinal principle of the paper whose utterances he now controlled. Still, it must be true that Neal was paint- ing the situation in colors altogether too black. "You're a pretty good stump performer yourself, Plonny. QUEED 321 Don't you know that exactly the same argument will be urged two years from now?" " I know it won't," said Plonny with the calmness of abso- lute conviction. "A fat legislature always follows a lean one. They come in strips, same as a shoulder of bacon." "Well ! I would n't think much of a party whose legs were so weak that a little step forward — everybody knows it 's forward — would tumble it over in a heap." "The party! I ain't thinking of the ^ar/ji, Mr. West. I'm thinking," said Neal, the indignation in his voice giving way to a sudden apologetic softness, "of you." "Me? What on earth have I got to do with it?" asked West, rather touched by the look of dog-like affection in the other's eyes. "Everything. If the party gets let in for this extrava- gance, you'il be the man who did it." There was a silence, and then West said, rather nobly: "Well, I suppose I will have to stand that. I must do what I think is right, you know, and take the consequences." "Two years from now," said Mr. Neal, gently, "there wouldn't be no consequences." "Possibly not," said West, in a firm voice. "While the consequences now," continued Mr. Neal. still more gently, "would be to put you in very bad with the party leaders. Fine men they are, but they never forgive a man who puts a crimp into the party. You 'd be a marked man to the longest day you lived!" "Well, Plonny! I'm not asking anything of the party leaders — " "But suppose some of your friends wanted to ask some- thing/or you?" Suddenly Plonny leaned over the table, and began speak- ing rapidly and earnestly. "Listen here, Mr. West. I understand your feelings and your position just like they was print, and I was reading them over your shoulder. You're walking with y'r eyes on the skies, and you don't like to look at the ground to see that 322 OUEED you don't break nothing as you go forward. Your mind's full of the maw'l idea and desire to uplift the people, and it 's kind of painful to you to stop and look at the plain practical way by which things get done. But I tell you that everybody who ever got anything big done in this world, got it done in a practical way. All the big men that you and I admire — all the public leaders and governors and reform mayors and so on — got where they have by doing practical good in a prac- tical way. Now, you don't like me to say that if you do so- and-so, you '11 be in bad with the State leaders, f 'r that looks to you as if I thought you could be infloonced by what would be your personal advantage. And I honor you f'r them feel- in's which is just what I knew you'd have, or I would n't be here talkin' to you now. But you must n't blame others if they ain't as partic'lar, mebbe, as to how things might look. You mustn't blame y'r friends — and you've got a sight more of them than you have any idea of — if they feel all broke up to see you get in bad, both for your own sake and f'r the sake of the party." Plonny's voice trembled with earnestness ; West had had no idea that the man admired him so much. "You want to serve the people, Mr. West? How could you do it better than in public orf'ce. Lemme talk to you straight f'r once — will you? Or am I only offendin' you by buttin' in this way, without having ever been asked?" West gave his admirer the needed assurance. " I'm glad of it, f'r I can hardly keep it in my system any longer. Listen here, Mr. West. As you may have heard, there 's to be a primary f'r city orf 'cers in June. Secret bal- lot or no secret ballot, the organization 's going to win. You know that. Now, who '11 the organization put up f'r Mayor? From what I hear, they dassen't put up any old machine hack, same 's they been doin' f'r years. They might want to do it, but they 're a-scared the people won't stand f'r it. From what little I hear, the feelin's strong that they got to put up some young progressive public-spirited man of the reformer OUEED 323 type. Now s'posin' the friends of a certain fine young man, sittin' not a hundred miles from this table, had it in their minds to bring him forward f 'r the nomination. This young man might say he was n't seekin' the orf'ce and did n't want it, but / say public orf'ce is a duty, and no man that wants to serve the people can refuse it, partic'larly when he may be needed to save the party. And now I ask you this, Mr. West: What show would the friends of this young man have, if he had a bad spot on his record? What chance 'd there be of namin' to lead the party in the city the man who had knifed the party in the State?" West's chin rested upon his hand; his gaze fell dreamily upon the table-top. Before his mind's eye there had un- rolled a favorite vision — a white meadow of faces f ocussed breathlessly upon a great orator. He recalled himself with a start, a stretch, and a laugh. "Are n't you wandering rather carelessly into the future, Plonny?" "If I am," said Mr. Neal, solemnly, "it's because you stand at the crossroads to-day." West found the office deserted, his assistant being gone for lunch. He finished two short articles begun earlier in the day, and himself departed with an eye to food. Later, he had to attend a couple of board meetings, which ran off into protracted by-talk, and the rainy twilight had fallen be- fore his office knew him again. Not long after, Queed, already hatted and overcoated to go, pushed open the connecting door and entered. The two chatted a moment of the make-up of next day's "page." Presently West said: "By the bye, written anything about the reformatory?" "Anything!" echoed Queed, with a faint smile. "You might say that I 've written everything about it — the best article I ever wrote, I should say. It's our last chance, you know." Queed thought of Eva Bernheimer, and a light crept into 324 OUEED his ordinarily impassive eye. At the same time, West's or- dinarily buoyant face fell a little. "That so? Let me see how you've handled it, will you?" "Certainly," said Queed, showing no surprise, though it was many a day since any composition of his had under- gone supervision in that office. It was on the tip of West's tongue to add, " I rather think we've been pressing that matter too hard," but he checked himself. Why should he make any explanation to his assist- ant? Was it not the fact that he had trusted the young man too far already? Queed brought his article and laid it on West's desk, his face very thoughtful now. " If there is any information I can give you about the subject, I'll wait." West hardly repressed a smile. "Thank you, I think I understand the situation pretty well." Still Queed lingered and hesitated, most unlike himself. Presently he strolled over to the window and looked down unseeingly into the lamplit wetness of Centre Street. In fact, he was the poorest actor in the world, and never pretended anything, actively or passively, without being unhappy. "It's raining like the mischief," he offered uncomfortably. "Cats and dogs," said West, his fingers twiddling with Queed 's copy. "By the way," said Queed, turning with a poorly done air of casualness, "what is commonly supposed to have become of Henry G. Surface? Do people generally believe that he is dead?" "Bless your heart, no!" said West, looking up in some sur- prise at the question. "That kind never die. They invari- ably live to a green old age — green like the bay-tree." "I — have gotten very much interested in his story," said Queed, which was certainly true enough. "Where do people think that he is now?" "Oh, in the West somewhere, living like a fat hog off Miss Weyland's money." Queed 's heart lost a beat. An instinct, swift as a reflex, OUEED 325 turned him to the window again ; he feared that his face might commit treason. A curious contraction and hardening seemed to be going on inside of him, a chilling petrifaction, and this sensation remained ; but in the next instant he felt himself under perfect control, and was calmly saying: — "Why, I thought the courts took all the money he had." "They took all they could find. If you've studied high finance you'll appreciate the distinction." Amiably West tapped the table-top with the long point of his pencil, and wished that Queed would restore him his privacy. "Every- body thought at the time, you know, that he had a hundred thousand or so put away where the courts never got hold of it. The general impression was that he'd somehow smug- gled it over to the woman he 'd been living with — his wife, he said. She died, I believe, but probably our friend Sur- face, when he got out, had n't the slightest trouble in putting his hands on the money." "No, I suppose not. An interesting story, is n't it? You '11 telephone if you need anything to-night?" "Oh, I shan't need anything. The page is shaping up very satisfactorily, I think. Good-night, my dear fellow." Left alone. West picked up Queed's closely-written sheets, and leaning back in his chair read them with the closest at- tention. Involuntarily, his intellect paid a tribute to the writer as he read. The article was masterly. The argument was close and swift, the language impassioned, the style piquant. ' ' Where did he learn to write like that ! ' ' wondered West. Here was the whole subject compressed into half a column, and so luminous a half column that the dullest could not fail to understand and admire. Two sarcastic little paragraphs were devoted to stripping the tatters from the nakedness of the economy argument, and these Mr. Queed's chief perused twice. "The talk of a doctrinaire," mused he presently. "The closet philosopher's ideas. How far afield from the real situ- ation. ..." It was a most fortunate thing, he reflected, that he him- 326 QUEED self had means of getting exact and accurate information at first hand. Suppose that he had not, that, like some editors, he had simply passed this article in without examination and correction. It would have made the Post ridiculous, and de- cidedly impaired its reputation for common sense and fair play. Whatever should or should not be said, this was cer- tainly no way to talk of honest men, who were trying to conserve the party and who differed from the Post only on an unimportant question of detail. West leaned back in his chair and stared at the farther wall. . . . For that was exactly what it was — an unimport- ant detail. The important thing, the one thing that he him- self had insisted on, was that the State should have a reform- atory. Whether the State had it now or two years from now, made relatively little difference, except to those who, like his editorial assistant, had sunk themselves in the question till their sense of proportion had deserted them. Was not that a fair statement of the case? Whatever he did, he must not let his views be colored by probable effects upon his own fu- ture. . . . Surely, to wait two brief years for the institu- tion, with the positive assurance of it then, could be no hard- ship to a State which had got along very well without it for all the years of its lifetime. Surely not. Plonny Neal, whose sharp horse sense he would back against any man in the State, was absolutely sound there. He tried to consider the question with chill judiciality, and believed that he was doing so. But the fervor which Plonny had imparted to it, and the respect which he had for Plonny's knowledge of practical conditions, stood by him, unconsciously guiding his thoughts along the line of least re- sistance. . . . Though nobody dared admit it publicly, the party was facing a great crisis ; and it was in his hand to save or to wreck it. All eyes were anxiously on the Post, which wielded the decisive power. The people had risen with the unreasonable demand that progress be checked for a time, because of the cost of it. The leaders had responded to the best of their ability, but necessary expenses were so great OUEED 32? that it was going to be a narrow shave at best — so narrow that another hundred thousand spent would land the whole- kettle of fish in the fire. The grand old party would gO' crashing down the precipice. Was not that a criminal price- to pay for getting a reformatory institution two years be- fore the people were ready to pay for it? There was the- whole question in a nutshell. The one unpleasant aspect of this view was Sharlee Wey- land, the dearest girl in the world. She would be much dis- appointed, and, for the first moment, would possibly be somewhat piqued with him personally. He knew that women- were extremely unreasonable about these things; they looked at affairs from the emotional point of view, from the point of view of the loose, large "effect." But Sharlee Wey- land was highly intelligent and sensible, and he had not the- smallest doubt of his ability to make her understand what the unfortunate situation was. He could not tell her every- thing — Plonnyhad cautioned secrecy about the real gravity of the crisis — but he would tell her enough to show her how he had acted, with keen regrets, from his sternest sense of public duty. It was a cruel stroke of fate's that his must be the hand to bring disappointment to the girl he loved, but after all, would she not be the first to say that he must never- put his regard for her preferences above the larger good of City and State? He could not love her, dear, so well, loved" he not honor more. He picked up Queed's article and glanced again at the astonishing words, words which, invested with the Post's^ enormous prestige, simply kicked and cuffed the party to its ruin. A wave of resentment against his assistant swept through the editor's mind. This was what came of trusting anything to anybody else. If you wanted to be sure that things were done right, do them yourself. Because he had' allowed Queed a little rope, that young man had industri- ously gathered in almost enough to hang, not himself, for he was nothing, but the Post and its editor. However, there was. no use crying over spilt milk. What was done was done. For- 328 OUEED tunately, the Post's general position was sound ; had not the editor himself dictated it? If the expression of that position in cold type had been gradually carried by a subordinate to a more and more violent extreme, to an intemperance of utterance which closely approached insanity, what was it the editor's duty to do? Obviously to take charge himself and swing the position back to a safe and sane mean, exactly where he had placed it to begin with. That was all that was asked of him — to shift back the paper's position to where he had placed it in the beginning, and by so doing to save the party from wreck. Could a sensible man hesitate an instant? And in return. . . . West's gaze wandered out of the window, and far on into the beyond. . . . His friends were watching him, silently but fearfully. Who and what these friends were his swift thought did not stay to ask. His glamorous fancy saw them as a great anxious throng, dominant men, yet respectful, who were trembling lest he should make a fatal step — to answer for it with his political life. Public life — he rejected the term political life — was of all things what he was pre- eminently fitted for. How else could a man so fully serve his fellows? — how so surely and strongly promote the up- lift? And Plonny Neal had served notice on him that he stood to-day on the crossroads to large public usefulness. The czar of them all, the great Warwick who made and unmade kings by the lifting of his finger, had told him, as plain as language could speak, that he. West, was his imperial choice for the mayoralty, with all that that foreshadowed. . . . Truly, he had served his apprenticeship, and was meet for his opportunity. For eight long months he had stood in line, doing his duty quietly and well, asking no favor of anybody. And now at last Warwick had beckoned him and set the mystic star upon his forehead. . . . Iridescent visionry enwrapped the young man, and he swam in it goldenly. In time his spirit returned to his body, and he found himself leaning back in a very matter-of-fact chair, facing a very plain question. How could the shift- QUEED 329 ing back, the rationalizing, of the paper's position be accom- plished with the minimum of shock? How could he rescue the party with the least possible damage to the Post's con- sistency? West went to a filing cabinet in the corner of the room, pulled out a large folder marked, Reformatory, and, return- ing to his seat, ran hurriedly through the Post's editorials on this subject during the past twelvemonth. Over some of the phrases he ground his teeth. They floated irritatingly in his head as he once more leaned back in his chair and frowned at the opposite wall. Gradually there took form in his mind a line of reasoning which would appear to grow with some degree of naturalness out of what had gone before, harmonizing the basic continu- ity of the Post's attitude, and minimizing the change in pre- sent angle or point of view. His fertile mind played about it, strengthening it, building it up, polishing and perfecting; and in time he began to write, at first slowly, but soon, with fluent ease. XXVI tn which Queed forces the Old Professor's Hand, and the Old Professor takes to his Bed. RAINCOAT buttoned to his throat, Queed set his face against the steady downpour. It was a mild, windless night near the end of February, foreshadowing the early spring already nearly due. He had no umbrella, or wish for one : the cool rain in his face was a refreshment and a vivifier. So the worst had come to the worst, and he had been liv- ing for nearly a year on Sharlee Weyland's money, stolen from her by her father's false friend. Wormwood and gall were the fruits that altruism had borne him. Two casual questions had brought out the shameful truth, and these questions could have been asked as easily a year ago as now. Bitterly did the young man reproach himself now, for his criminal carelessness in regard to the sources of Surface's luxurious income. For the better part of a year he had known the old man for an ex-convict whose embezzlings had run high into six figures. Yet he had gone on fatuously swallow- ing the story that the money of which the old rogue was so free represented nothing but the savings of a thrifty school- teacher. A dozen things came back to him now to give the lie to that tale. He thought of the costly books that Surface was constantly buying; the expensive repairs he had made in his rented house; the wine that stood on the dinner- table every night; the casual statement from the old man that he meant to retire from the school at the end of the present session. Was there ever a teacher who could live like this after a dozen years' roving work? And the probability was that Surface had never worked at all until, returning to his own city, he had needed a position as a cover and a bUnd. OUEED 33X Mathematical computations danced through the young man's brain. He figured that their present scale of living must run anywhere from $3500" to $5000 a year. Surface's income from the school was known to be $900 a year. His income from his lodger was $390 a year. This difference be- tween, say $4000 and $1290, was $2710 a year, or 4 per cent on some $70,000. And this tidy sum was being filched from the purse of Charlotte Lee Weyland, who worked for her liv- ing at an honorarium of $75 a month. Queed walked with his head lowered, bent less against the rain than his own stinging thoughts. At the corner of Seventh Street a knot of young men, waiting under a dripping awn- ing for a car that would not come, cried out gayly to the Doc ; they were Mercuries ; but the Doc failed to respond to their greetings, or even to hear them. He crossed the humming street, northerly, with an experienced sureness acquired since his exploit with the dog Behemoth ; and so came into his own section of the town. He was an apostle of law who of all things loved harmony. Already his mind was busily at work seeking to restore order out of the ruins of his house. Obviously the first thing to do, the one thing that could not wait an hour, was to get his sense of honesty somehow back again. He must compel Surface to hand over to Miss Weyland immediately every cent of money that he had. The delivery could be arranged easily enough, without any sensational revelations. The let- ter to Miss Weyland could come from a lawyer in the West; in Australia, if the old man liked ; that did n't matter. The one thing that did matter was that he should immediately make restitution as fully as lay within the power of them both. Surface, of course, would desperately resist such a sug- gestion. Queed knew of but one club which could drive him to agree to it, one goad which could rowel him to the height. This was his own continued companionship. He could com- pel Surface to disgorgement only at the price of a new offer- ing of himself to the odious old man who had played false 332 OUEED with him as with everybody else. Queed did not hesitate. At the moment every cost seemed small to clear his dearest belonging, which was his personal honesty, of this stain. As for Surface, nothing could make him more detestable in a moral sense than he had been all along. He had been a thief and a liar from the beginning. Once the cleansing storm was over, their unhappy domestic union could go on much as it had done before. For his part, he must at once set about restoring his half of the joint living expenses consumed during the past nine months. This money could be passed in through the lawyer ■with the rest, so that she would never know. Obviously, he ■would have to make more money than he was making now, which meant that he would have to take still more time from his book. There were his original tax articles in the Post, ■which a publisher had asked him at the time to work over into a primer for college use. There might be a few hundreds to be made there. He could certainly place some articles in the reviews. If for the next twelve months he ruthlessly eliminated everything from his life that did not bring in money, he could perhaps push his earnings for the next year to three thousand dollars, which would be enough to see him through. . . . And busy with thoughts like these, he came home to Sur- face's pleasant little house, and was greeted by the old man with kindness and good cheer. It was dinner-time — for they dined at night now, in some state — and they sat down to four dainty courses, cooked and served by the capable Henderson. The table was a round one, so small that the two men could have shaken hands across it without the smallest exertion. By old Surface's plate stood a gold-topped bottle, containing, not the ruddy burgundy which had become customary of late, but sparkling champagne. Surface referred to it, grace- fully, as his medicine; doctors, he said, were apparently un- der the delusion that schoolmasters had bottomless purses. To this pleasantry Queed made no reply. He was, indeed, OUEED 333. spare with his remarks that evening, and his want of appe- tite grieved old Henderson sorely. The servant brought the coffee and retired. He would not be back again till he was rung for: that was the iron rule. The kitchen was separated from the dining-room by a pantry and two doors. Thus the diners were as private as they were ever likely to be in this world, and in the breast of one of them was something that would brook no more delay. "Professor," said this one, with a face which gave no sign of inner turmoil, "I find myself obliged to refer once more to — an unwelcome subject." Surface was reaching for his coffee cup; he was destined never to pick it up. His hand fell; found the edge of the table; his long fingers gripped and closed over it. "Ah?" he said easily, not pretending to doubt what sub- ject was meant. "I'm sorry. I thought that we had laid the old ghosts for good." "I thought so, too. I was mistaken, it seems." Across the table, the two men looked at each other. To Surface, the subject must indeed have been the most un- welcome imaginable, especially when forced upon him with so ominous a directness. Yet his manner was the usual bland mask; his face, rather like a bad Roman senator's in the days of the decline, had undergone no perceptible change. "When I came here to live with you," said Queed, "I understood, of course, that you would be contributing sev- eral times as much toward our joint expenses as I. To a cer- tain degree, you would be supporting me. Naturally, I did not altogether like that. But you constantly assured me, you may remember, that you would rather put your savings into a home than anything else, that you could not manage it without my assistance, and that you considered my com- panionship as fully off setting the difference in the money we paid. So I became satisfied that the arrangement was honor- able to us both." Surface spoke with fine courtesy. "All this is so true,, your contribution toward making our house a home has 334 OUEED been so much greater than my own, that I feel certain nothing can have happened to disturb your satisfaction." "Yes," said Queed. " I have assumed all the time that the .money you were spending here was your own." There was a silence. Queed looked at the table-cloth. He had just become aware that his task was hateful to him. The t)ne thing to do was to get it over as swiftly and decisively as possible. " I am at a loss," said the old man, dryly, "to understand ■where the assumption comes in, in view of the fact that I have stated, more than once — " " I am forced to tell you that I cannot accept these state- ments." For a moment the brilliant eyes looked dangerous. "Are you aware that your language is exceedingly offensive?" "Yes. I 'm very sorry. Nevertheless, this tooth must come out. It has suddenly become apparent to me that you must be spending here the income on hardly less than seventy- iive thousand dollars. Do you seriously ask me to believe, now that I directly bring up the matter, that you amassed this by a few years of school-teaching?" Surface lit a cigarette, and, taking a slow puff, looked un- winkingly into the young man's eyes, which looked as stead- ily back into his own. "You are mistaken in assuming," he said sternly, "that, in giving you my affection, I have given you any right to cross-examine me in — " "Yes, you gave it to me when you invited me to your house as, in part, your guest — " "I am behind the times, indeed, if it is esteemed the privilege of a guest to spy upon his host." "That," said Queed, quietly, "is altogether unjust. You must know that I am not capable of sp3dng on you. I have, on the contrary, been culpably short-sighted. Never once have I doubted anything you told me until you yourself insisted on^ rubbing doubts repeatedly into my eyes. Pro- fessor," he went on rapidly, "are you aware that those familiar with your story say that, when you — that, after OUEED 335 your misfortune, you started life again with a bank account of between one and two hundred thousand dollars?" The black eyes lit up like two shoe-buttons in the sun- light. "That is a wicked falsehood, invented at the time by a lying reporter — " "Do you assert that everything you have now has been earned since your misfortune?" "Precisely that." The voice was indignantly firm, but Queed, looking into the old man's face, read there as plain as day that he was lying. "Think a moment," he said sorrowfully. "This is pretty serious, you see. Are you absolutely sure that you carried over nothing at all?" "In the sight of God, I did not. But let me tell you, my friend—" A chair-leg scraped on the carpeted floor, and Queed was standing, playing his trump card with a grim face. "We must say good-by. Professor — now. I'll send for my things in the morning." "What do you mean, you — " "That you and I part company to-night. Good-by." " Stop ! " cried Surface. He rose, greatly excited and leaned over the table. A faint flush drove the yellow from his cheek ; his eyes were blazing. He shook a menacing finger at close range in Queed 's face, which remained entirely unmoved by the demonstration. "So this is the reward of my kindness and affection! I won't endure it, do you understand ? I won't be kicked into the gutter like an old shoe, do you hear? Sit down in that chair. I forbid you to leave the house." Queed's gaze was more formidable than his own. "Mr. Surface," he said, in a peculiarly quiet voice, "you forget yourself strangely. You are in no position to speak to me like this." Surface appeared suddenly to agree with him. He fell back into his chair and dropped his face into his hands. 336 OUEED Queed, standing where he was, watched him across the tiny dinner-table and, against his reason, felt very sorry. How humiliating this ripping up of old dishonor was to the proud old man, rogue though he was, he understood well enough. From nobody in the world but him, he knew, would Surface ever have suffered it to proceed as far as this, and this knowledge made him want to handle the knife with as little roughness as possible. "I — was wrong," said the mufHed voice. "I ask your forgiveness for my outbreak." "You have it." Surface straightened himself up, and, by an obvious effort, managed to recapture something like his usual smoothness of voice and manner. " Will you be good enough to sit down? I will tell you what you wish." "Certainly. Thank you." Queed resumed his seat. His face was a little pale, but otherwise just as usual. Inwardly, after the moment of crit- ical uncertainty, he was shaken by a tempest of fierce exulta- tion. His club, after all, was going to be strong enough ; the old man would give up the money rather than give up him. Surface picked up his cigarette. All his storm signals had disappeared as by magic. "I did manage," began the old man, flicking off his ash with an admirable effect of calm, "to save a small nest-egg from the wreck, to keep me from J:he poorhouse in my old age. I did not wish to tell you this because, with your lack of acquaintance with business methods, the details would only confuse, and possibly mislead, you. I had, too, another reason for wishing to keep it a surprise. You have forced me, against my preferences, to tell you. As to this small pittance," he said, without the flicker of an eye-lash, "any court in the country would tell you that it is fairly and honorably mine." "Thank you. I appreciate your telling me this." Queed leaned over the table, and began speaking in a quiet, brisk OUEED 337 voice. "Now, then, here is the situation. You have a certain sum of money put away somewhere, estimated to be not less than a hundred thousand dollars — " "Nothing of the sort! Far less than that! A few beggarly thousands, which — " "Very well — a few thousands. Of course your books will readily show the exact figures. This money was withheld at the time your affairs were settled, and therefore was not applied to reducing the — the loss on the trustee account. Of course, if its existence had been known, it would have been so applied. In other words, the Weyland estate has been deprived to the exact extent of the sum withheld. Fortunately, it is never too late to correct an error of this sort. My idea is that we should make the restitution with- out the loss of an unnecessary day." Doubtless the old man had seen it coming; he heard the galling proposal with a face which showed nothing stronger than profound surprise. "Restitution! My dear boy, I owe no restitution to any one." "You hardly take the position that you have acquired a title to the Weyland trustee funds?" "Ah, there it is!" purred Surface, making a melancholy gesture. "You see why I did not wish to open up this com- plicated subject. Your ignorance, if you will pardon me, of modern business procedure, makes it very difficult for you to grasp the matter in its proper bearings. Without going into too much detail, let me try to explain it to you. This settlement of my affairs that you speak of was forcibly done by the courts, in the interest of others, and to my great injury. The rascals set out to cut my throat — was it required of me to whet the knife for them? They set out to strip me of the last penny I had, and they had every advantage, despotic powers, with complete access to all my private papers. If the robbers overlooked something that I had, a bagatelle I needed for the days of my adversity, was it my business to pluck them by the sleeve and turn traitor to myself? Why, the law itself gave me what they passed over. I was declared 338 OUEED a bankrupt. Don't you know what that means? It means that the courts assumed responsibiUty for my affairs, paid off my creditors, and, as a small compensation for having robbed me, wiped the slate clean and declared me free of all claims. And this was twenty-five years ago. My dear boy! Read the Bankruptcy Act. Ask a lawyer, any lawyer — " "Let us not speak of lawyers — now," interrupted Queed, stirring in his chair. "Let their opinion wait as a last alter- ufitive, which, I earnestly hope, need never be used at all. I am not bringing up this point to you now as a legal ques- ftion, but as a moral one." "Ah! You do not find that the morals provided by the Paw are good enough for you, then?" "If your reading of the law is correct — of which I am lot so certain as you are, I fear — it appears that they are aot. But — " "It is my misfortune," interrupted the old man, his hand tightening on the table-edge, "that your sympathies are not with me in the matter. Mistaken sentiment, youthful Quixotism, lead you to take an absurdly distorted view of what—" "No, I'm afraid not. You see, when stripped of all un- necessary language, the repulsive fact is just this: we are living here on money that was unlawfully abstracted from the Weyland estate. No matter what the law may say, we know that this money morally belongs to its original owners. Now I ask you — " "Let me put it another way. I can show you exactly where your misapprehension is — " Queed stopped him short by a gesture. "My mind is so clear on this point that discussion only wastes our time." The young man's burst of exultation was all but still- born; already despair plucked chilly at his heart-strings. For the first time the depth of his feeling broke through into his voice: "Say, if you like that I am unreasonable, ignorant, unfair. Put it all down to besotted prejudice. . . . Can't you OUEED 339 restore this money because I ask it? Won't you do it as a favor to me?" Surface's face became agitated. " I believe there is nothing else in the world — that I would n't do for you — a thoU' sand times over — but — " Then Queed threw the last thing that he had to offer intc the scales, namely himself. He leaned over the table ano fixed the old man with imploring eyes. "I'd do my best to make it up to you. I'll — I'll live with you till one or the other of us dies. You '11 haVe some- body to take care of you when you are old, and there will' never be any talk of the poorhouse between you and me. It can all be arranged quietly through a lawyer. Professor — and nobody will guess your secret. You and I will find quiet lodgings somewhere, and live together — as friends — live cleanly, honorably, honestly — " "For God's sake, stop!" said Surface, in a broken voice. "This is more than I can bear." So Queed knew that it was hopeless, and that the old man meant to cling to his dishonored money, and let his friend go. He sank back in his chair, sick at heart, and a painful silence fell. "If I refuse," Surface took up the theme, "it is for your sake as well as mine. My boy, you don't know what you ask. It is charity, mere mad charity to people whom I have no love for, who — " "Then," said Queed, "two things must happen. First, I must lay the facts before Miss Weyland." Surface's manner changed; his eyes became unpleasant. "You are not serious. You can hardly mean to repeat to anybody what I have told you in sacred confidence." Queed smiled sadly. "No, you have not told me anything in confidence. You have never told me anything until I first found it out for myself, and then only because denial was useless." "When I told you my story last June, you assured me—" 340 OUEED " However, you have just admitted that what you told me last June was not the truth." Again their eyes clashed, and Surface, whose face was slowly losing all its color, even the sallowness, found no sign of yielding in those of the younger man. Queed resumed : " However, I do not mean that I shall tell her who you are, unless you yourself compel me to. I shall simply let her know that you are known to be alive, within reach of the courts, and in possession of a certain sum of money withheld from the trustee funds. This will enable her to take the matter up with her lawyers and, as I believe, bring it before the courts. If her claim is sustained, she would doubtless give you the opportunity to make restitution through intermediaries, and thus sensational disclosures might be avoided. However, I make you no promises about that." Surface drew a breath ; he permitted his face to show signs of relief. ' ' Since my argument and knowledge carry so little weight with you," he said with a fine air of dignity, "I am willing to let the courts convince you, if you insist. But I do beg — " Queed cut him short; he felt that he could not bear one of the old man's grandiloquent speeches now. "There is one other thing that must be mentioned," he said in a tired voice. "You understand, of course, that I can live here no longer." "My God! Don't say that! Are n't you satisfied with what you've done to me without that!" " I have n't done anything to you. Whatever has been done, you have deliberately done to yourself. I have no de- sire to hurt or injure you. But — what are you thinking about, to imagine that I could continue to live here — on this money?" "You contradict yourself twice in the same breath! You just said that you would let the courts settle that question — " "As to the Weyland estate's claim, yes. But I do not let the courts regulate my own sense of honor." OUEED 341 Surface, elbows on the table, buried his face in his hands. Queed slowly rose, a heart of lead in his breast. He had failed. He had offered all that he had, and it had been un- hesitatingly kicked aside. And, unless long litigation was started, and unless it ultimately succeeded, Henry G. Sur- face would keep his loot. He glanced about the pleasant little dining-room, symbol of the only home he had ever known, where, after all, he had done great work, and been not unhappy. Personally, he was glad to leave it, glad to stand out from the shadow of the ruin of Henry G. Surface. Nevertheless it was a real part- ing, the end of an epoch in his life, and there was sadness in that. Sadness, too, he saw, deeper than his repugnance and anger, in the bowed figure before him, the lost old man whom he was to leave solitary henceforward. Saddest of all was the consciousness of his own terrible failure. He began speaking in a controlled voice. "This interview is painful to us both. It is useless to pro- long it. I — have much to thank you for — kindness which I do not forget now and shall not forget. If you ever recon- sider your decision — if you should ever need me for any- thing — I shall be within call. And now I must leave you . . . sorrier than I can say that our parting must be like this." He paused: his gaze rested on the bent head, and he offered, without hope, the final chance. "Your mind is quite made up? You are sure that — this — is the way you wish the matter settled?" Surface took his face from his hands and looked up. His expression was a complete surprise. It was neither savage nor anguished, but ingratiating, complacent, full of sup- pressed excitement. Into his eyes had sprung an indescrib- able look of cunning, the look of a broken-down diplomat about to outwit his adversary with a last unsuspected card. "No, no! Of course I'll not let you leave me like this," he said, with a kind of trembling eagerness, and gave a rather painful laugh. "You force my hand. I had not meant to tell you my secret so soon. You can't guess the real reason 342 OUEED why I refuse to give my money to Miss Weyland, even when you ask it, now can you? You can't guess, now can you?" " I think I can. You had rather have the money than have me. " Not a bit of it. Nothing of the kind ! Personally I care nothing for the money. I am keeping it," said the old man, lowering his voice to a chuckling whisper, "for you!" He leaned over the table, fixing Queed with a gaze of triumphant cunning. "I'm going to make you my heir! Leave every- thing I have in the world to you!" A wave of sick disgust swept through the young man, momentarily engulfing his power of speech. Never had the old man's face looked so loathsome to him, never the man himself appeared so utterly detestable. Surface had risen, whispering and chuckling. "Come up to the sitting-room, my dear boy. I have some papers up there that may open your eyes. You need never work — " "Stop!" said Queed, and the old man stopped in his tracks. "Can't I make you understand?" he went on, fighting hard for calmness. "Isn't it clear to you that nothing could induce me to touch another penny of this money?" " Ah !" said Surface, in his softest voice. "Ah! And might I inquire the reason for this heroic self-restraint?" "You choose your words badly. It is no restraint to hon- est men to decline to take other people's money." "Ah, I see. I see. I see," said Surface, nodding his shining hairless head up and down. "Good-by." "No, no," said the old man, in an odd thick voice. "Not quite yet, if you please. There is still something that I want to say to you." He came slowly around the tiny table, and Queed watched his coming with bursts of fierce repugnance which set his hard-won muscles to twitching. An elemental satisfaction there might be in throwing the old man through the window. Yet, in a truer sense, he felt that the necessity of manhan- OUEED 343 dJiiig him would be the final touch in this degrading inter- view. "You value your society too high, my dear boy," said Surface with a face of chalk. "You want too big a price. I must fork over every penny I have, to a young trollop who happens to have caught your fancy — " "Stand away from me!" cried Queed, with a face sud- denly whiter than his own. " You will tempt me to do what I shall be sorry for afterwards." But Surface did not budge, and to strike, after all, was hardly possible; it would be no better than murder. The two men stood, white face to white face, the two pairs of fearless eyes scarcely a foot apart. And beyond all the ob- vious dissimilarity, there appeared a curious resemblance in the two faces at that moment: in each the same habit of unfaltering gaze, the same high forehead, the same clean-cut chin, the same straight, thin-lipped mouth. "Oh, I see through you clearly enough," said Surface. "You're in love with her! You think it is a pretty thing to sacrifice me to her, especially as the sacrifice costs you nothing — " "Stop! Will you force me in the name of common de- cency — " " But I '11 not permit you to do it, do you hear? " continued Surface, his face ablaze, his lower lip trembling and twitch- ing, as it does sometimes with the very old. "You need some discipline, my boy. Need some discipline — and you shall have it. You will continue to live with me exactly as you have heretofore, only henceforward I shall direct your move- ments and endeavor to improve your manners." He swayed slightly where he stood, and Queed 's tense- ness suddenly relaxed. Pity rose in his heart above furious resentment; he put out his hand and touched the old man's arm. "Control yourself," he said in an iron voice. "Come — I will help you to bed before I go." Surface shook himself free, and laughed unpleasantly. 344 OUEED "Go! Did n't you hear me tell you that you were not going? Who do you think I am that you can flout and browbeat and threaten — " " Come ! Let us go up to bed — " "Who do you think I am!" repeated Surface, bringing his twitching face nearer, his voice breaking to sudden shrillness. "Who do you think I am, I say?" Queed thought the old man had gone off his head, and indeed he looked it. He began soothingly: "You are — " "I'm your father! Your father, do you hear!" cried Sur- face. " You 're my son — Henry G. Surface, Jr. ! " This time, Queed, looking with a wild sudden terror into the flaming eyes, knew that he heard the truth from Surface at last. The revelation broke upon him in a stunning flash. He sprang away from the old man with a movement of loath- ing unspeakable. "Father!" he said, in a dull curious whisper. "O God! Father!" Surface gazed at him, his upper lip drawn up into his old purring sneer. "So that is how you feel about it, my son?" he inquired suavely, and suddenly crumpled down upon the floor. The young man shook him by the shoulder, but he did not stir. Henderson came running at the sound of the fall, and together they bore the old man, breathing, but inert as the dead, to his room. In an hour, the doctor had come and gone. In two hours, a trained nurse was sitting by the bed as though she had been there always. The doctor called it a "stroke," superinduced by a "shock." He said that Profes- sor Nicolovius might live for a week, or a year, but was hardly likely to speak again on this side the dark river that runs round the world. XXVII Sharlee Weyland reads the Morning Post; of Rev. Mr. Dayne's Fight at Ephesus and- the Telephone Message that never came; of the Editor's Comment upon the Assistant Editor's Resignation, which perhaps lacked Clarity; and of how Eight Men elect a Mayor. NEXT morning, in the first moment she had, Sharlee Weyland read the Post's editorial on the reforma- tory. And as she read she felt as though the skies had fallen, and the friendly earth suddenly risen up and smitten her. It was a rainy morning, the steady downpour of the night before turned into a fine drizzle; and Sharlee, who nearly always walked, took the car downtown. She was late this morning; there had been but flying minutes she could give to breakfast ; not a second to give to anything else ; and there- fore she took the Post with her to read on the ride to "the" office. And, seating herself, she turned immediately to the editorial page, in which the State Department of Charities felt an especial interest this morning. Both the name and the position of the editorial were im- mediately disappointing to her. It was not in the leading place, and its caption was simply "As to the Reformatory," which seemed to her too colorless and weak. Subconsciously, she passed the same judgment upon the opening sentences of the text, which somehow failed to ring out that challenge to the obstructionists she had confidently expected. As she read further, her vague disappointment gave way to a sudden breathless incredulity ; that to a heartsick rigidity of atten- tion ; and when she went back, and began to read the whole article over, slowly and carefully, from the beginning, her face was about the color of the pretty white collar she wore. 346 OUEED For what she was looking on at was, so it seemed to her, not simply the killing of the chief ambition of her two years' work, but the treacherous murder of it in the house of its friends. As she reread "As to the Reformatory," she became im- pressed by its audacious cleverness. It would have been im- possible to manage a tremendous shift in position with more consummate dexterity. Indeed, she was almost ready to take the Post's word for it that no shift at all had been made. From beginning to end the paper's unshakable loyalty to the reformatory was everywhere insisted upon ; that was the strong keynote; the ruinous qualifications were slipped in, as it were, reluctantly, hard-wrung concessions to indisputable and overwhelming evidence. But there they were, scarcely noticeable to the casual reader, perhaps, but to passionate partisans sticking up like palm-trees on a plain. In a back- handed, sinuous but unmistakable way, the Post was telling the legislature that it had better postpone the reformatory for another two years. It was difficult to say just what phrase or phrases finally pushed the odious idea out into the light; but Sharlee Hngered longest on a passage which, after referring to the "list of inescapable expenditures pub- lished elsewhere," said: Immediacy, of course, was never the great question; but it was a question; and the Post has therefore watched with keen regret the rolling up of absolutely unavoidable expenses to the point where the spending of another dollar for any cause, however meritorious in itself, must be regarded as of dubious wisdom. That sentence was enough. It would be as good as a vol- ume to the powerful opposition in the House, hardly re- pressed heretofore by the Post's thunders. The reformatory, which they had labored for so long, was dead. The thought was bitter to the young assistant secretary. But from the first, her mind had jumped beyond it, to fasten on another and, to her, far worse one, a burning personal question by the side of which the loss of the reformatory seemed for the moment an unimportant detail. OUEED 347 Which of the two men had done it ? Rev. Mr. Dayne was sitting bowed over his desk, his strong head clamped in his hands, the morning Post crumpled on the floor beside him. He did not look up when his assistant entered the office; his response to her "Good-morning" was of the briefest. Sharlee understood. It was only the corpo- real husk of her friend that was seated at the desk. All the rest of him was down at Ephesus fighting with the beasts, and grimly resolved to give no sign from the arena till he had set his foot upon their necks for the glory of God and the honor of his cloth. Sharlee herself did not feel conversational. In silence she took off her things, and, going over to her own desk, began opening the mail. In an hour, maybe more, maybe less, the Secretary stood at her side, his kind face calm as ever. "Well," he said quietly, "how do you explain it?" Sharlee's eyes offered him bay-leaves for his victory. "There is a suggestion about it," said she, still rather white, "of thirty pieces of silver." " Oh ! We can hardly say that. Let us give him the bene- fit of the doubt, as long as there can be any doubt. Let us view it for the present as a death-bed repentance." Him? Which did he mean? "No," said Sharlee, " it is not possible to view it that way. The Post has been as familiar with the arguments all along, from beginning to end, as you or I. It could not be hon- estly converted any more than you could. This," said she, struggling to speak calmly, "is treachery." "Appearances, I am sprry to say, are much that way. Still — I think we should not condemn the paper unheard." "Then why not have the hearing at once? An explana- tion is — " "I shall seek none," mterrupted Mr. Dayne, quietly. "The Post must volunteer it, if it has any to offer. Of course," he went on, "we know nothing of the history of that editorial now. Of one thing, however, I feel absolutely certain; that is, that it was published without the know- 348 OUEED ledge of Mr. West. Developments may follow. ... As for instance a shake-up in the staff." That settled it. This good man whom she admired so much had not entertained a doubt that the editorial was from the brain and pen of Mr. Queed. She said painfully: "As to the effect upon the — the re- formatory — " " It is killed," said Mr. Dayne, and went away to his desk. Sharlee turned, in her desk-chair and looked out of the rain-blurred windows. Through and beyond the trees of the park, over ridges of roofs and away to the west and north, she saw the weather- beaten Post building, its distant gray tower cutting mistily out of the dreary sky. From where she sat she could just pick out, as she had so often noticed before, the tops of the fifth-floor row of windows, the windows from which the Post's editorial department looked out upon a world with which it could not keep faith. Behind one of those windows at this moment, in all likelihood, sat the false friend who hacj cut down the reformatory from behind. Which was it? Oh, was not Mr. Dayne right, as he always was? Where was there any room for doubt? Long before Sharlee knew Charles Gardiner West per sonally, when she was a little girl and he just out of coUeget she had known him by report as a young man of fine ideals, exalted character, the very pattern of stainless honor. Her later intimate knowledge of him, she told herself, had fully borne out the common reputation. Wherever she had touched him, she had found him generous and sound and sweet. That he was capable of what seemed to her the bald- est and basest treachery was simply unthinkable. And what reason was there ever to drag his name into her thought of the affair at all? Was it not Mr. Queed who had written all the reformatory articles since Colonel Cowles's death — Mr. Queed who had promised only twenty-four hours ago to do his utmost for the cause at the critical moment to-day? And yet . . . and yet . . . her mind clung desperately QUEED 349 to the thought that possibly the assistant editor had not done this thing, after all. The memory of his visit to her, less than a week ago, was very vivid in her mind. What sort of world was it that a man with a face of such shining honesty could stoop to such shabby dishonesty? — that a man who had looked at her as he had looked at her that night, could turn again and strike her such a blow? That Queed should have done this seemed as inconceivable as that West should have done it. There was the wild hundredth chance that neither had done it, that the article had been written by some- body else and published by mistake. But the hope hardly fluttered its wings before her reason struck it dead. No, there was no way out there. The fact was too plain that one of her two good friends, under what pressure she could not guess, had consented to commit dis- honor and, by the same stroke, to wound her so deeply. For no honest explanation was possible; there was no argument in the case to-day that was not equally potent a month ago. It was all a story of cajolery or intimidation from the for- midable opposition, and of mean yielding in the places of re- sponsibility. And — yes — She felt it as bad for one of her two friends to be so stained a.s another. It had come to that. At last she must admit that they stood upon level ground in her imagination, the nameless little Doctor of two years back side by side with the beau ideal of all her girlhood. One's honor was as dear to her as another's; one's friendship as sweet ; and now one of them was her friend no more. And it was not West whom she must cast out. There was no peg anywhere to hang even the smallest suspicion of him upon. She scourged her mind for seeking one. It was Queed who, at the pinch, had broken down and betrayed them with a kiss : Queed, of the obscure parentage, dubious inheritance, and omitted upbringing; Queed, whom she had first stood upon his feet and started forward in a world of men, had helped and counseled and guided, had admitted to her acquaintance, her friendship — for this. But because Sharlee had known Queed well as a man who 350 OUEED loved truth, because the very thing that she had seen and most admired in him from the beginning was an unflinch- ing honesty of intellect and character, because of the re- membrance of his face as she had last seen it : a tiny corner of her mind, in defiance of all reason, revolted against this condemnation and refused tp shut tight against him. All morning she sat at her work, torn by anxiety, hoping every moment that her telephone might ring with some unthought- of explanation, which would leave her with nothing worse upon her mind than the dead reformatory. But though the telephone rang often, it was never for this. Sitting in a corner of the House gallery, about noon, Mr. Dayne saw the reformatory bill, which he himself had writ- ten, called up out of order and snowed under. The only speech was made by the Solon who had the bill called up, a familiar organization wheelhorse, named MeachyT. Bangor, who quoted with unconcealed triumph from the morning's Post, wholly ignoring all the careful safeguards and tearing out of the context only such pwrtions as suited his humor and his need. Mr. Bangor pointed out that, inasmuch as the "ac- knowledged organ" df the State Department of Charities now at length "confessed" that the reformatory had better wait two years, there were no longer two sides to the ques- tion. Many of the gentleman's hearers appeared to agree with him. They rose and fell upon the bill, and massacred it by a vote of 54 to 32. From "Sis" Hopkins, legislative reporter of the Post, the news went skipping over the telephone wire to the editorial rooms, where the assistant editor, who received it, remarked that he was sorry to hear it. That done, the assistant hung up the receiver, and resumed work upon an article entitled "A Constitution for Turkey? " He had hardly added a sen- tence to this composition before West came in and, with a cheery word of greeting, passed into his own office. The assistant editor went on with his writing. He looked worn this morning, Henry Surface's son, and not without OUEED 351 reason. Half the night he had shared the nurse's vigil at the bedside of Surface, who lay in unbroken stupor. Half the night he had maintained an individual vigil in his own room, lying flat on his back and staring wide-eyed into the 'dark- ness. And on the heels of the day, there had come new trouble for him, real trouble, though in the general cata- clysm its full bearings and farther reaches did not at once come home to him. Running professionally through the Post at breakfast-time, his eye, like Miss Weyland's, had been suddenly riveted by that paper's remarks upon the reformatory. . . . What was the meaning of the staggering performance he had no idea, and need not inquire. Its im- mediate effect upon his own career was at least too plain for argument. His editorship and his reformatory had gone down together. Yet he was in no hurry now about following West into his sanctum. Of all things Queed, as people called him, de- spised heroics and abhorred a "scene." Nothing could be gained by a quarrel now ; very earnestly he desired the inter- view to be as matter-of-fact as possible. In half an hour, when he had come to a convenient stopping-place, he opened the door and stood uncomfortably before the young man he had so long admired. West, sitting behind his long table, skimming busily through the paper with blue pencil and scissors, looked up with his agreeable smile. "Well! What do you see that looks likely for — What's the matter? Are you sick to-day? " "No, I am quite well, thank you. I find very little in the news, though. You notice that a digest of the railroad bill is given out?" "Yes. You don't look a bit well, old fellow. You must take a holiday after the legislature goes. Yes, I 'm going to take the hide off that bill. Or better yet — you. Don't you feel like shooting off some big guns at it?" "Certainly, if you want me to. There is the farmers' con- vention, too. And by the way, I 'd like to leave as soon as you can fill my place." 352 OUEED West dropped scissors, pencil, and paper and stared at him with dismayed amazement. "Leave I Why, you are never thinking of leaving me!" "Yes. I 'd — like to leave. I thought I ought to tell you this morning, so that you can at once make your plans as to my successor." " But my dear fellow ! I can't let you leave me I You 've no idea how I value your assistance, how I 've come to lean and depend upon you at every point. I never dreamed you were thinking of this. What 's the matter? What have you got on your mind?" "I think," said Queed, unhappily, "that I should be bet- ter satisfied off the paper than on it." "Why, confound you — it's the money!" said West, with a sudden relieved laugh. "Why did n't you tell me, old fel- low? You're worth five times what they're paying you — five times as much as I am for that matter — and I can make the directors see it. Trust me to make them raise you to my salary at the next meeting." "Thank you — but no, my salary is quite satisfactory." West frowned off into space, looking utterly bewildered. "Of course," he said in a troubled voice, "you have a per- fect right to resign without saying a word. I have n't the smallest right to press you for an explanation against your will. But — good Lord! Here we've worked together side by side, day after day, for nearly a year, pretty good friends, as I thought, and — well, it hurts a little to have you put on your hat and walk out without a word. I wish you would tell me what 's wrong. There 's nothing I would n't do, if I could, to fix it and keep you." The eyes of the two men met acro-ss the table, and it was Queed's that faltered and fell. "Well," he said, obviously embarrassed, "I find that I am out of sympathy with the policy of the paper." "Oh-h-ho!" said West, slowly and dubiously. "Do you mean my article on the reformatory?" "Yes — I do." OUEED 353 "Why, my dear fellow!" West paused, his handsome eyes clouded, considering how best he might put the matter to overcome most surely the singular scruples of his assistant. "Let's take it this way, old fellow. Suppose that my standpoint in that article was diametrically wrong. I am sure I could convince you that it was not, but admit, for argument's sake, that it was. Do you feel that the appear- ance in the paper of an article with which you don't agree makes it necessary for you, in honor, to resign?" "No, certainly not — " "Is it that you don't like my turning down one of your articles and printing one of my own instead? I did n't know you objected to that, old fellow. You see — while your judgment is probably a hanged sight better than mine, after all I am the man who is held responsible, and I am paid a salary to see that my opinions become the opinions of the Post." "It is entirely right that your opinions — " "Then wherein have I offended? Be frank with me, like a good fellow, I beg you!" Queed eyed him strangely. Was the editor's inner vision really so curiously astigmatic? " I look at it this way," he said, in a slow, controlled voice. "The Post has said again and again that this legislature must establish a reformatory. That was the burden of a long series of editorials, running back over a year, which, as I thought, had your entire approval. Now, at the critical mo- ment, when it was only necessary to say once more what had been said a hundred times before, the Post suddenly turns about and, in effect, authorizes this legislature not to estab- lish the reformatory. The House killed the bill just now. Bangor quoted from the Post editorial. There can be no doubt, of course, that it turned a number of votes — enough to have safely carried the bill." West looked disturbed and unhappy. "But if we find out that this legislature is so drained by 354 OUEED inescapable expenses that it simply cannot provide the money? Suppose the State had been swept by a plague? Suppose there was a war and a million of unexpected ex- penses had suddenly dropped on us from the clouds? Would n't you agree that circumstances altered cases, and that, under such circumstances, everything that was not indispensable to the State's existence would have to go over?" Queed felt like answering West's pepper-fire of casuistry by throwing Eva Bernheimer at his head. Despite his de- termination to avoid a "scene," he felt his bottled-up indig- nation rising. A light showed in his stone-gray eyes. "Can't you really see that these circumstances are not in the least like those? Did you do me the courtesy to read what I wrote about this so-called 'economy argument' last night?" "Certainly," said West, surprised by the other's tone. "But clever as it was, it was not based, in my opinion, on a clear understanding of the facts as they actually exist. You and I stay so close inside of four walls here that we are apt to get out of touch with practical conditions. Yesterday, I was fortunate enough to get new facts, from a confidential and highly authoritative source. In the light of these — I wish I could explain them more fully to you, but I was pledged to secrecy — I am obliged to tell you that what you had written seemed to me altogether out of focus, unfair, and extreme." " Did you get these facts, as you call them, from Plonny Neal?" "As to that, I am at liberty to say nothing." Queed, looking at him, saw that he had. He began to feel sorry for West. "I would give four hundred and fifty dollars," he said slowly — "all the money that I happen to have — if you had told me last night that you meant to do this." "I am awfully sorry;," said West, with a touch of dignity, "that you take it so hard. But I assure you — " OUEED 355 " I know Plonny Neal even better than you do," continued Queed, "for I have known him as his social equal. He is laughing at you to-day." West, of course, knew better than that. The remark con- firmed his belief that Queed had brooded over the reforma- tory till he saw everything about it distorted and magnified. "Well, old fellow," he said, without a trace of ill-humor in his voice or his manner, "then it is I he is laughing at — not you. That brings us right back to my point. If you feel, as I understand it, that the Post is in the position of having deserted its own cause, I alone am the deserter. Don't you see that? Not only am I the editor of the paper, and so responsible for all that it says; but I wrote the article, on my own best information and judgment. Whatever conse- quences there are," said West, his thoughts on the conse- quences most likely to accrue to the saviour of the party, " I assume them all." "A few people," said Queed, slowly, "know that I have been conducting this fight for the Post. They may not un- derstand that I was suddenly superseded this morning. But of course it is n't that. It is simply a matter — " "Believe me, it can all be made right. I shall take the greatest pleasure in explaining to your friends that I alone am responsible. I shall call to-day — right now — at — " "I'm sorry," said Queed, abruptly, "but it is entirely impossible for me to remain." West looked, and felt, genuinely distressed. "I wish," he said, "the old reformatory had never been born"; and he went on in a resigned voice : " Of course I can't keep you with a padlock and chain, but — for the life of me, I can't catch your point of view. To my mind it appears the honorable and courageous thing to correct a mistake, even at the last moment, rather than stand by it for appearance's sake." "You see I don't regard our principles as a mistake." But he went back to his office marveling at himself for the ease with which West had put him in the wrong. For friendship's sake, West had meant to call at the Chari- 356 OUEED ties Department that day, and explain to his two friends there how his sense of responsibility to the larger good had made it necessary for him to inflict a momentary disap- pointment upon them. But this disturbing interview with his assistant left him not so sure that an immediate call would be desirable, after all. At the moment, both Dayne and the dearest girl in the world would naturally be feeling vexed over the failure of their plan ; would n't it be the sen- sible and considerate thing to give them a little time to con- quer their pique and compose themselves to see facts as they were? The Chronicle that afternoon finally convinced him that this would be the considerate thing. That offensive little busy- body, which pretended to have been a champion of "this people's institution" came out with a nasty editorial, en- titled "The Post's Latest Flop." "Flop" appeared to be an intensely popular word in the Chronicle office. The article boldly taxed "our more or less esteemed contemporary " with the murder of the reformatory, and showed unpleasant free- dom in employing such phrases as " instantaneous conver- sion," "treacherous friendship," "disgusting somersault- ing," and the like. Next day, grown still more audacious, it had the hardihood to refer to the Post as "The Plonny Neal organ." Now, of course, the reformatory had not been in any sense a burning public "issue." Measures like this, being solid and really important, seldom interest the people. There was not the smallest popular excitement over the legislature's con- duct, or the Post's. The Chronicle' s venomous remarks were dismissed as the usual "newspaper scrap." All this West understood perfectly. Still, it was plain that a few enthusi- asts, reformatory fanatics, were taking the first flush of dis- appointment rather hard. For himself. West reflected, he cared nothing about their clamor. Conscious of having per- formed an unparalleled service to his party, and thus to his State, he was willing to stand for a time the indignation of the ignorant, the obloquy of the malicious, even revolt and OUEED 357 disloyalty among his own lieutenants. One day the truth about his disinterested patriotism would become known. For the present he would sit silent, calmly waiting at least until unjust resentment subsided and reason reasserted her sway. Many days passed, as it happened, before West and the Secretary of Charities met; six days before West and the Assistant Secretary met. On the sixth night, about half- past seven in the evening, he came unexpectedly face to face with Sharlee Weyland in the vestibule of Mrs. Byrd, Senior's, handsome house. In the days intervening, Sharlee's state of mind had remained very much where it was on the first morning : only now the tiny open corner of her mind had shrunk to imperceptible dimensions. Of West she enter- tained not the smallest doubt; and she greeted him like the excellent friend she knew him to be. There was a Uttle dinner-dance at Mrs. Byrd's, for the season's debutantes. It became remembered as one of the most charming of all her charming parties. To the buds were added a sprinkling of older girls who had survived as the fittest, while among the swains a splendid catholicity as to age prevailed. A retinue of imported men, Caucasian at that, served dinner at six small tables, six at a table ; the viands were fashioned to tickle tired epicures; there was vintage champagne such as kings quaff to pledge the com- ity of nations; Wissner's little band of artists, known to command its own price, divinely mingled melody with the rose-sweetness of the air. West, having dined beautifully, and lingered over coffee in the smoking-room among the last, emerged to find the polished floors crowded with an influx of new guests, come to enliven the dance. His was, as ever, a Roman progress ; he stopped and was stopped every- where; like a happy opportunist, he plucked the flowers as they came under his hand, and gayly whirled from one measure to another. So the glorious evening was half spent before, in an intermission, he found himself facing Sharlee Weyland, who was uncommonly well attended, imploring her hand for the approaching waltz. 358 OUEED Without the smallest hesitation, Sharlee drew her orna- mental pencil through the next name on her list, and ordered her flowers and fan transferred from the hands of Mr. Beverley Byrd to those of Mr. Charles Gardiner West. "Only," said she, thinking of her partners, "you'll have to hide me somewhere." With a masterful grace which others imitated, indeed, but could not copy, West extricated his lady from her gallants, and led her away to a pretty haven ; not indeed, to a con- servatory, since there was none, but to a bewitching nook under the wide stairway, all banked about with palm and fern and pretty flowering shrub. There they sat them down, unseeing and unseen, near yet utterly remote, while in the blood of West beat the intoxicating strains of Straus, not to mention the vintage champagne, to which he had taken a very particular fancy. All night, while the roses heard the flute, violin, bassoon, none in all the gay company had been gayer than Sharlee. Past many heads in the dining-room, West had watched her, laughing, radiant, sparkling as the wine itself, a pretty Uttle lady of a joyous sweetness that never knew a care. In the dance, for he had watched her there, too, wondering, as she circled laughing by, whether she felt any lingering traces of pique with him, she had been the same : no girl ever wore a merrier heart. But a sudden change came now. In the friendly freedom of the green-banked alcove, Sharlee's gayety dropped from her like a painted mask, which, having amused the children, has done its full part. Against the back of the cushioned settle where they sat she leaned a weary head, and frankly let her fringed lids droop. At another time West might have been pleased by such candid evidences of confidence and intimacy, but liot to- night. He felt that Sharlee, having advertised a delightful gayety by her manner, should now proceed to deliver it: it certainly was not for tired sweetness and disconcerting silences that he had sought this tite-d-tite. But at last his failure to arouse her on indifferent topics became too OUEED 359 marked to be passed over; and then he said in a gentle voice : — " Confess, Miss Weyland. You 're as tired as you can be." She turned her head, and smiled a Httle into his eyes. "Yes — you don't mind, do you?" "Indeed I do, though! You're going altogether too hard — working like a Trojan all day and dancing like a dryad all night. You'll break yourself down — indeed you will!" Hardly conscious of it herself, Sharlee had been waiting with a tense anxiety of which her face began to give signs, for him to speak. And now she understood that he would not speak; and she knew why. . . . How her heart warmed to him for his honorable silence in defense of his unworthy friend. But she herself was under no such restraint. "It isn't that," she said quickly. "It's the reformatory — I've worried myself sick over it." West averted his gaze ; he saw that it had come, and in a peculiarly aggravated form. He recognized at once how im- possible it would be to talk the matter over, in a calm and rational way, under such conditions as these. This little girl had brooded over it till the incident had assumed grotesque and fantastic proportions in her mind. She was seeing visions, having nightmares. In a soothing, sympathetic voice, he began consoling her with the thought that a post- ponement for two brief years was really not so serious, and that — "It isn't that!" she corrected him again, in the same voice. "That was pretty bad, but — what I have minded so much was M was the Post's desertion." West's troubled eyes fell. But some hovering imp of darkness instantly popped it into his head to ask: "Have you seen Queed?" "No," said Sharlee, colorlessly. "Not since-^-" "You — did n't know, then, that he has left the Post?" "Left the Post!" she echoed, with a face suddenly rigid. "No! Did he? Won't you tell me— ?" 36o OUEED West looked unhappily at the floor. "Well — I'd much rather not go into this now. But the fact is that he left because . . . well, we had a difference of opinion as to that reformatory article." Sharlee turned hastily away, pretending to look for her fan. The sudden shutting of that tiny door had shot her through with unexpected pain. The last doubt fell now; all was plain. Mr. Queed had been discharged for writing an article which outraged his chief's sense of honor, that knightly young chief who still would not betray him by a word. The little door clicked; Sharlee turned the key upon it and threw away the key. And then she turned upon West a face so luminous with pure trust that it all but unsteadied him. To do West justice, it was not until his words had started caroming down the eternal halls of time, that their possible implication dawned upon him. His vague idea had been merely to give a non-committal summary of the situation to ease the present moment; this to be followed, at a more suitable time, by the calm and rational explanation he had always intended. But the magical effect of his chance words, entirely unexpected by him, was quite too delightful to be wiped out. To erase this look from the tired little lady's face by labored exposition and tedious statistic would be the height of clumsy unkindness. She had been unhappy; he had made her happy; that was all that was vital just now. At a later time, when she had stopped brooding over the thing and could see and discuss it intelligently, he would take her quietly and straighten the whole matter out for her. For this present, there was a look in her eyes which made a trip-hammer of his heart. Never had her face — less of the mere pretty young girl's than he had ever seen it, somewhat worn beneath its color, a little wistful under her smile — seemed to him so immeasurably sweet. In his blood Straus and the famous Verzenay plied their dizzying vocations. Suddenly he leaned forward, seeing nothing but two wonder- OUEED 361 ful blue eyes, and his hand fell upon hers, with a grip which claimed her out of all the world. "Sharlee — " he said hoarsely. "Don't you know that — " But he was, alas, summarily checked. At just that min- ute, outraged partners of Miss Weyland's espied and de- scended upon them with loud reproachful cries, and Charles Gardiner West's moment of superb impetuosity had flow- ered in nothing. At a little earlier hour on the same evening, in a dining- room a mile away, eight men met "without political signifi- cance" to elect a new set of officers for the city. A bit of red-tape legislation permitted the people to ratify the choices at a "primary," to be held some months later; but the elec- tion came now. Unanimously, and with little or no discus- sion, the eight men elected one of their own number, Mr. Meachy T. Bangor by name, to the office of Mayor of the City. One of them then referred humorously to Mr. Bangor as just the sort of progressive young reformer that suited him. Another suggested, more seriously, that they might have to allow for the genuine article some day. iPlonny Neal, who sat at the head of the table, as being the wisest of them, said that the organization certainly must expect to knuckle to reform some day; perhaps in eight years, perhaps in twelve years, perhaps in sixteen. "Got your young feller all picked out, Plonny?" queried the Mayor elect, Mr. Bangor, with a wink around the room. Plonny denied that he had any candidate. Under pressure, however, he admitted having his eye on a certain youth, a "dark horse" who was little known at present, but who, in his humble judgment, was a coming man. Plonny said that this man was very young just now, but would be plenty old enough before they would have need of him. Mr. Bangor once more winked at the six. "Why, Plonny, I thought you were rooting for Charles Gardenia West." 362 OUEED "Then there's two of ye," said Plohny, dryly, "he being the other one." He removed his unlighted cigar, and spat loudly into a tall brass cuspidor, which he had taken the precaution to place for just such emergencies. " Meachy," said Plonny, slowly, " I would n't give the job of dog-catcher to a man you could n't trust to stand by his friends." XXVIII How Words can be like Blows, and Blue Eyes stab deep; how Queed sits by a Bedside and reviews his Life; and how a Thought leaps at him and will not down. IN the first crushing burst of revelation, Queed had had a wild impulse to wash his hands of everything, and fly. He would pack Surface off to a hospital ; dispose of the house; escape back to Mrs. Paynter's; forget his terrible knowledge, and finally bury it with Surface. His reason forti- fied the impulse at every point. He owed less than nothing to his father; he had not the slightest responsibility either toward him or for him ; to acknowledge the relation between them would do no conceivable good to anybody. He would go back to the Scriptorium, and all would be as it had been before. But when the moment came either to go or to stay, an- other and deeper impulse rose against this one, and beat it down. Within him a voice whispered that though he might go back to the Scriptorium, he would never be as he had been before. Whether he acknowledged the relation or not, it was still there. And, in time, his reason brought forth material to fortify this impulse, too : it came out in brief, grim sentences which burned themselves into his mind. Surface was his father. To deny the primal blood-tie was not honorable. The sins of the fathers descended to the children. To sup- press Truth was the crowning blasphemy. Queed did not go. He stayed, resolved, after a violent struggle — it was all over in the first hour of his discovery — to bear his burden, shouldering everything that his sonship involved. By day and by night the little house stood very quiet. Its secret remained inviolate; the young man was still Mr. 364 OUEED Queed, the old one still Professor Nicolovius, who had suf- fered the last of his troublesome " strokes." Inside the dark- ened windows, life moved on silent heels. The doctor came, did nothing, and went. The nurse did nothing but stayed. Queed would have dismissed her at once, except that that would have been bad economy; he must keep his own more valuable time free for the earning of every possible penny. To run the house, he had, for the present, his four hundred and fifty dollars in bank, saved out of his salary. This, he figured, would last nine weeks. Possibly Surface would last longer than that: that remained to be seen. Late on a March afternoon, Queed finished a review ar- ticle — his second since he had left the newspaper, four days before — and took it himself to the post-office. He wanted to catch the night mail for the North ; and besides his body, jaded by two days' confinement, cried aloud for a little exer- cise. His fervent desire was to rush out all the articles that were in him, and get money for them back with all possible speed. But he knew that the market for this work was lim- ited. He must find other work immediately; he did not care greatly what kind it was, provided only that it was profit- able. Thoughts of ways and means, mostly hard thoughts, occupied his mind all the way downtown. And always it grew plainer to him how much he was going to miss, now of all times, his eighteen hundred a year from the Post. In the narrowest corridor of the post-office — like West in the Byrds' vestibule — he came suddenly face to face with Sharlee Weyland. The meeting was unwelcome to them both, and both their faces showed it. Sharlee had told herself, a thousand times in a week, that she never wanted to see Mr. Queed again. Queed had known, without telling himself at all, that he did not want to see Miss Weyland, not, at least, till he had had more time to think. But Queed 's dread of seeing the girl had nothing to do with what was uppermost in her mind — the Post's treacherous editorial. Of course, West had long since made that right as he had promised, as he would have done QUEED 365 with no promising. But — ought he to tell her now, or to wait? . . . And what would she say when she knew the whole shanieful truth about him — knew that for nearly a year Surface Senior and Surface Junior, shifty father and hoodwinked son, had been living fatly on the salvage of her own plundered fortune? She would have passed him with a bow, but Queed, more awkward than she, involuntarily halted. The dingy gas- light, which happened to be behind him, fell full upon her face, and he said at once: — "How do you do? — not very well, I fear. You look quite used up — not well at all." Pride raised a red flag in her cheek. She lifted a great muff to her lips, and gave a little laugh. "Thank you. I am quite well." Continuing to gaze at her, he went ahead with customary directness: "Then I am afraid you have been taking — the reformatory too hard." "No, not the reformatory. It is something worse than that. I had a friend once," said Sharlee, muff to her lips, and her level eyes upon him, "and he was not worthy." To follow out that thought was impossible, but Queed felt very sorry for West when he saw how she said it. " I 'm sorry that you should have had this — to distress you . However — ' ' "Is n't it rather late to think of that now? As to saying it — I should have thought that you would tell me of your sorrow immediately — or not at all." _A long look passed between them. Down the corridor, on both sides of them, flowed a stream of people bent upon mails; but these two were alone in the world. "Have you seen West?" asked Queed, in a voice unHke his own. She made a little movement of irrepressible distaste. "Yes. . . . But you must not think that he told me. He is too kind, too honorable — to betray his friend." He stared at b'er< reft of the power of speech. 366 OUEED From under the wide hat, the blue eyes seemed to leap out and stab him; they lingered, turning the knife, while their owner appeared to be waiting for him to speak; and then with a final twist, they were pulled away, and Queed found himself alone in the corridor. He dropped his long envelope in the slot labeled North, and turned his footsteps toward Duke of Gloucester Streew again. Within him understanding had broken painfully into flame Miss Weyland believed that he was the author of the unfor- givable editorial — he, who had so gladly given, first the best abilities he had, and then his position itself, to the cause of Eva Bernheimer. West had seen her, and either through deliberate falseness or his characteristic fondness for shying off from disagreeable subjects — Queed felt pretty sure it was the latter — had failed to reveal the truth. West's motives did not matter in the least. The terrible situation in which he himself had been placed was all that mattered, and that he must straighten out at once. What dumbness had seized his tongue just now he could not imagine. But it was plain that, however much he would have preferred not to see the girl at all, this meeting had made another one immedi- ately necessary: he must see her at once, to-night, and clear himself wholly of this cruel suspicion. And yet ... he could never clear himself of her having suspected him; he under- stood that, and it seemed to him a terrible thing. No matter how humble her contrition, how abject her apologies, nothing could ever get back of what was written, or change the fact that she had believed him capable of that. The young man pursued his thoughts over three miles of city streets, and returned to the house of Surface. The hour was 6.30. He took the nurse's seat by the bed- side of his father and sent her away to her dinner. There was a single gas-light in the sick-room, turned just high enough for the nurse to read her novels. The old man lay like a log, though breathing heavily; under the flickering light, his face looked ghastly. It had gone all to pieces; ad- QUEED 367 vanced old age had taken possession of it in a night. More- over the truth about the auburn mustaches and goatee was coming out in snowy splotches; the fading dye showed a mottle of red and white not agreeable to the eye. Here was not merely senility, but ignoble and repulsive senility. His father! . . . his father! OGod! How much better to have sprung, as he once believed, from the honest loins of Tim Queed! The young man averted his eyes from the detestable face of his father, and let his thoughts turn inward upon himself. For the first time in all his years, he found himself able to trace his own life back to its source, as other men do. A flying trip to New York, and two hours with Tim Queed, had answered all questions, cleared up all doubts. First of all, it had satisfied him that there was no stain upon his birth. Surface's second marriage had been clan- destine, but it was genuine; in Newark the young man found the old clergyman who had officiated at the ceremony. His mother, it seemed, had been Miss Floretta May Earle, a "handsome young opery singer," of a group, so Tim said, to which the gentleman, his father, had been very fond of giving his "riskay little bacheldore parties." Tim's story, in fact, was comprehensive at all points. He had been Mr. Surface's coachman and favorite servant in the heyday of the Southern apostate's metropolitan glories. About a year before the final catastrophe. Surface's affairs being then in a shaky condition, the servants had been dis- missed, the handsome house sold, and the financier, in a desperate effort to save himself, had moved off somewhere to modest quarters in a side street. That was the last Tim heard of his old patron, till the papers printed the staggering news of his arrest. A few weeks later, Tim one day received a message bidding him come to see his former maister in the Tombs. The disgraced capitalist's trial was then in its early stages, but he entertained not the smallest hope of acquittal. Broken and embittered, he confided to his faithful servant 368 OUEED that, soon after the break-up of his establishment, he had quietly married a wife ; that some weeks earlier she had pre- sented him with a son ; and that she now lay at the point of death with but remote chances of recovery. To supply her with money was impossible, for his creditors, he said, had not only swooped down like buzzards upon the remnant of his fortune, but were now watching his every move under the suspicion that he had managed to keep something back. All his friends had deserted him as though he were a leper, for his had been the unpardonable sin of being found out. In all the world there was no equal of whom he was not too proud to ask a favor. In short, he was about to depart for a long sojourn in prison, leaving behind a motherless, friendless, and penniless infant son. Would Tim take him and raise him as his own? While Tim hesitated over this amazing request. Surface leaned forward and whispered a few words in his ear. He had contrived to secrete a little sum of money, a very small sum, but one which, well invested as it was, would provide just enough for the boy's keep. Tim was to receive twenty-five dollars monthly for his trouble and expense; Surface pledged his honor as a gentleman that he would find a way to smug- gle this sum to him on the first of every month. Tim, being in straits at the time, accepted with alacrity. No, he could not say that Mr. Surface had exhibited any sorrow over the impending decease of his wife, or any affectionate interest in his son. In fact the ruined man seemed to regard the arrival of the little stranger — "the brat," as he called him — with peculiar exasperation. Tim gathered that he never expected or desired to see his son, whatever the future held, and that, having arranged for food and shelter, he meant to wash his hands of the whole transaction. The honest guardian's sole instructions were to keep mum as the grave ; to provide the necessaries of life as long as the boy was dependent upon him; not to interfere with him in any way; but if he left, always to keep an eye on him, and stand ready to produce him on demand. To these things, and particularly to abso- OUEED 369 lute secrecy, Tim was sworn by the most awful of oaths ; and so he and his master parted. A week later a carriage was driven up to Tim's residence in tlie dead of the night, and a small bundle of caterwauling humankind was transferred from the one to the other. Such was the beginning of the life of young Queed. The woman, his mother, had died a day or two before, and where she had been buried Tim had no idea. So the years passed, while the Queeds watched with amazement the subtly expanding verification of the adage that blood will tell. For Mr. Surface, said Tim, had been a great scholard, and used to sit up to all hours reading books that Thomason, the butler, could n't make head nor tail of; and so with Surface's boy. He was the strange duckling among chickens who, with no guidance, straightway plumed himself for the seas of printed knowledge. Time rolled on. When Surface was released from prison, as the papers an- nounced, there occurred not the smallest change in the status of affairs ; except that the monthly remittances now bore the name of Nicolovius, and carne from Chicago or some other city in the west. More years passed ; and at last, one day, after a lapse of nearly a quarter of a century, the unex- pected happened, as it really will sometimes. Tim got a letter in a handwriting he knew well, instructing him to call next day at such-and-such a time and place. Tim was not disobedient to the summons. He called ; and found, instead of the dashing young master he had once known, a soft and savage old man whom he at first utterly failed to recognize. Surface paced the floor and spoke his mind. It seemed that an irresistible impulse had led him back to his old home city; that he had settled and taken work there; and there meant to end his cjays. Under these circumstances, some deep-hidden instinct — a whim, the old man called it — had put it into his head to consider the claiming and final acknowledgment of his son. After all the Ishmaelitish years of bitterness and wandering. Surface's blood, it seemed, yearned for his blood. But under no cir- 370 OUEED cumstances, he told Tim, would he acknowledge his son be- fore his death, since that would involve the surrender of his incognito; and not even then, so the old man swore, unless he happened to be pleased with the youth — the son of his body whom he had so utterly neglected through all these years. Therefore, his plan was to have the boy where they would meet as strangers; where he could have an opportunity to watch, weigh, and come to know him in the most casual way; and thereafter to act as he saw fit. So there, in the shabby lodging-house, the little scheme was hatched out. Surface undertook by his own means to draw his son, as the magnet the particle of steel, to his city. Tim, to whom the matter was sure to be broached, was to encourage the young man to go. But more than this: it was to be Tim's diplomatic task to steer him to the house where Surface, as Nicolovius, resided. Surface himself had sug- gested the device by which this was to be done ; merely that Tim, mentioning the difficulties of the boarding-house ques- tion in a strange city, was to recall that through the lucky chance of having a cousin in this particular city, he knew of just the place: a house where accommodations were of the best, particularly for those who liked quiet for studious work, and prices ridiculously low. The little stratagem worked ad- mirably. The address which Tim gave young Surface was the address of Mrs. Paynter's, where Surface Senior had lived for nearly three years. And so the young man had gone to his father, straight as a homing pigeon. How strange, how strange to look back on all this now! Half reclining in the nurse's chair, unseeing eyes on the shaded and shuttered window, for the fiftieth time Queed let his mind go back over his days at Mrs. Paynter's, reading them all anew in the light of his staggering knowledge. With three communications of the most fragmentary sort, his father had had his full will of his son. With six typewritten lines, he had drawn the young man to his side at his own good pleasure. Boarding-house gossip made it known that the son was in peril of ejectment for non-payment of board, and OUEED 371 a twenty-dollar bill had been promptly transmitted — at some risk of discovery — to ease his stringency. Last came the mysterious counsel to make friends and to like people, the particular friends and people intended being consol- idated, he could understand now, in the person of old Nicol- ovius. And that message out of the unknown had had its effect: Queed could see that now, at any rate. His father clearly had been satisfied with the result; he appeared as his father no more. Thenceforward he stalked his prey as Nicolovius — with what consummate skill and success! Oh, but did he not have a clever father, a stealthy, cunning, merciless father, soft-winged, foul-eyed, hungry-taloned, flitting noiselessly in circles, that grew ever and ever nar- rower, sure, and unfaltering to the final triumphant swoop ! Or no — Rather a coiled and quiescent father, horrible- eyed, lying in slimy rings at the foot of the tree, basilisk gaze fixed upward, while the enthralled bird fluttered hopelessly down, twig by twig, ever nearer and nearer. But no — his metaphors were very bad ; he was sentimen- talizing, rhetorizing, a thing that he particularly abhorred. Not in any sense was he the pitiful prey of his father, the hawk or the snake. Rather was he glad that, after long doubt and perplexity, at last he knew. For that was the passion of all his chaste life: to know the truth and to face it without fear. Surface stirred slightly in his bed, and Queed, turning his eyes, let them rest briefly on that repulsive face. His father! . . . And he must wear that name and shoulder that infamy forevermore! The nurse came back and relieved him of his vigil. He descended the stairs to his solitary dinner. And as he went, and while he lingered over food which he did not eat, his thoughts withdrew from his terrible inheritance to centre anew on the fact that, within an hour, he was to see Miss Weyland again. The prospect drew him while it even more strongly repelled. 372 QUEED For a week he had hesitated, unable to convince himself that he was justified in telling Miss Weyland at once the whole truth about himself, his father, and her money. Th^e was much on the side of delay. Surface might die at any moment, and this would relieve his son from the smallest reproach of betraying a confidence: the old man himself had said that everything was to be made known when he died. On the other hand Surface might get well, and if he did, he ought to be given a final chance to, make the restitution him- self. Besides this, there was the great uncertainty about the money. Queed had no idea how much it was, or where it was, or whether or not, upon Surface's death, he himself was to get it by bequest. But all through these doubts, passionately protesting against them, had run his own insistent feeling that it was not right to conceal the truth, even under such confused conditions — not, at least, from the one person who was so clearly entitled to know it. This feeling had reached a climax even before he met the girl this afternoon. Some- how that meeting had served to precipitate his decision. After all. Surface had had both his chance and his warn- ing. That his sonship would make him detestable in Miss Weyland's sight was highly probable, but he could not let the fear of that keep him silent. His determination to tell her the essential facts had come now, at last, as a kind of corollary to his instant necessity of straightening out the reformatory situation. This latter necessity had dominated his thought ever since the chance meeting in the post-office. And as his mind explored the subject, it ramified, and grew more complicated and oppressive with every step of the way. It gradually became plain to him that, in clearing himself of responsibility for the Post's editorial, he would have to put West in a very unpleasant position. He would have to convict him, not only of having written the perfidious article, but of having left another man under the reproach of having written it. But no; it could not be said that he was putting OUEED 373 West in this position. West had put himself there. It was he who had written the article, and it was he who had kept si- lent about it. Every man must accept the responsibility for his own acts, or the world would soon be at sixes and sevens. In telling Miss Weyland the truth about the matter, as far as that went, he would be putting himself in an unpleasant position. Nobody liked to see one man ' ' telling on ' ' another. He did not like it himself, as he remembered, for instance, in the case of young Brown in the Blaines College hazing affair. Queed sat alone in the candle-lit dining-room, thinking things out. A brilliant idea came to him. He would tele- phone to West, explain the situation to him, and ask him to set it right immediately. West, of course, would do so. At the worst, he had only temporized with the issue — perhaps had lost sight of it altogether — and he would be shocked to learn of the consequences of his procrastination. He himself could postpone his call on Miss Weyland till to-morrow, leav- ing West to go to-night. Of course, however, nothing his former chief could do now would change the fact that Miss Weyland herself had doubted him. Undoubtedly, the interview would be a painful one for West. How seri ous an offense the girl considered the editorial had been plain in his own brief conversation with her. And West would have to acknowledge, further, that he had kept quiet about it for a week. Miss Weyland would forgive West, of course, but he could never be the same to her again. He would always have that spot. Queed himself felt that way about it. He had admired West more than any man he ever knew, more even than Colonel Cowles, but now he could never think very much of him again. He-was quite sure that Miss Weyland was like that, too. Thus the matter began to grow very serious. For old Surface, who was always right about people, had said that West was the man that Miss Weyland meant to marry. Very gradually, for the young man was still a slow analyst where people were concerned, an irresistible conclusion was forced upon him. 374 OUEED Miss Weyland would rather think that he had written the editorial than to know that West had written it. The thought, when he finally reached it, leapt up at him, but he pushed it away. However, it returned. It became like one of those swinging logs which hunters hang in trees to catch bears: the harder he pushed it away, the harder it swung back at him. He fully understood the persistence of this idea. It was the heart and soul of the whole question. He himself was simply Miss Weyland's friend, the least among many. If be- lief in his dishonesty had brought her pain — and he had her word for that — it was a hurt that would quickly pass. False friends are soon forgotten. But to West belonged the shining pedestal in the innermost temple of her heart. It would go hard with the little lady to find at the last moment this stain upon her lover's honor. He had only to sit still and say nothing to make her happy. That was plain. So the whole issue was shifted. It was not, as it had first seemed, merely a matter between West and himself. The real issue was between Miss Weyland and him- self — between her happiness and his . . . no, not his hap- piness — his self-respect, his sense of justice, his honor, his chaste passion for Truth, his . . . yes, his happiness. Did he think most of Miss Weyland or of himself? That was what it all came down to. Here was the new demand that his acknowledgment of a personal life was making upon him, the supreme demand, it seemed, that any man's per- sonal life could ever make upon him. For if, on the day when Nicolovius had suddenly revealed himself as Surface, he had been asked to give himself bodily, he was now asked to give himself spiritually — to give all that made him the man he was. From the stark alternative, once raised, there was no escape. Queed closed with it, and together they went down into deep waters. XXIX In which Queed's Shoulders can bear One Man's Roguery and. Another's Dishonor, and of what these Fardels cost him: how for the Second Time in his Life he stays out of Bed to think. SHARLEE, sitting upstairs, took the card from the tray and, seeing the name upon it, imperceptibly hesitated. But even while hesitating, she rose and turned to her dressing-table mirror. "Very well. Say that I'll be down in a minute." She felt nervous, she did not know why; chilled at her hands and cold within; she rubbed her cheeks vigorously with a handkerchief to restore to them some of the color which had fled. There was a slightly pinched look at the corners of her mouth, and she smiled at her reflection in the glass, somewhat artificially and elaborately, until she had chased it away. Undoubtedly she had been working too hard by day, and going too hard by night ; she must let up, stop burning the candle at both ends. But she must see Mr. Queed, of course, to show him finally that no explanation could explain now. It came into her mind that this was but the third time he had ever been inside her house — the third, and it was the last. He had been shown into the front parlor, the stiffer and less friendly of the two rooms, and its effect of formality matched well with the temper of their greeting. By the ob- vious stratagem of coming down with book in one hand and some pretense at fancy-work in the other, Sharlee avoided shaking hands with him. Having served their purpose, the small burdens were laid aside upon the table. He had been standing, awaiting her, in the shadows near the mantel ; the chair that he chanced to drop into stood almost under one of the yellow lamps ; and when she saw his face, she hardly re- 376 OUEED pressed a start. For he seemed to have aged ten years since he last sat in her parlor, and if she had thought his face long ago as grave as a face could be, she now perceived her mis- take. The moment they were seated he began, in his usual voice, and with rather the air of having thought out in advance ex- actly what he was to say. "I have come again, after all, to talk only of definite things. In fact, I have something of much importance to tell you. May I ask that you will consider it as confiden- tial for the present?" At the very beginning she was disquieted by the discovery that his gaze was steadier than her own. She was annoy- ingly conscious of looking away from him, as she said: — "I think you have no right to ask that of me." Surface's son smiled sadly. "It is not about — anything that you could possibly guess. I have made a discovery of — a business nature, which concerns you vitally." "A discovery?" "Yes. The circumstances are such that I do not feel that anybody should know of it just yet, but you. However — " "I think you must leave me to decide, after hearing you — " "I believe I will. I am not in the least afraid to do so. Miss Weyland, Henry G. Surface is alive." Her face showed how completely taken back she was by the introduction of this topic, so utterly remote from the subject she had expected of him. " Not only that," continued Queed, evenly — " he is within reach. Both he — and some property which he has — are within reach of the courts." "Oh! How do you know? . . . Where is he?" " For the present I am not free to answer those questions." There was a brief silence. Sharlee looked at the fire, the stirrings of painful memories betrayed in her eyes. "Wa knew, of course, that he might be still alive," she said slowly. "I — hope he is well and happy. But. — we OUEED 377 have no interest in him now. That is all closed and done with. As for the courts — I am sure that he has been pun- ished already more than enough." "It is not a question of punishing him any more. You fail to catch my meaning, it seems. It has come to my knowledge that he has some money, a good deal of it — " "But you cannot have imagined that I would want his money?" "His money? He has none. It is all yours. That is why I am telling you about it." "Oh, but that can't be possible. I don't understand." Sitting upright in his chair, as businesslike as an attorney, Queed explained how Surface had managed to secrete part of the embezzled trustee funds, and had been snugly living on it ever since his release from prison. "The exact amount is, at present, mere guesswork. But I think it will hardly fall below fifty thousand dollars, and it may run as high as a hundred thousand. I learn that Mr. Surface thinks, or pretends to think, that this money be- longs to him. He is, needless to say, wholly mistaken. I have taken the liberty of consulting a lawyer about it, of course laying it before him as a hypothetical case. I am advised that when Mr. Surface was put through bankruptcy, he must have made a false statement in order to withhold this money. Therefore, that settlement counts for nothing, ex- cept to make him punishable for perjury now. The money is yours whenever you apply for it. That — " "Oh — but I shall not apply for it. I don't want it, you see." " It is not a question of whether you want it or not. It is yours — in just the way that the furniture in this room is yours. You simply have no right to evade it." Through all the agitation she felt in the sudden dragging out of this long-buried subject, his air of dictatorial authority brought the blood to her cheek. " I have a right to evade it, in the first place, and in the second, I am not evading it at all. He took it ; I let him keep 378 OUEED it. That is the whole situation. I don't want it — I could n't touch it — " "Well, don't decide that now. There would be no harm, I suppose, in your talking with your mother about it — even with some man in whose judgment you have confidence. You will feel differently when you have had time to think it over. Probably it— " "Thinking it over will make not the slightest difference in the way I feel — " "Perhaps it would if you stopped thinking about it from a purely selfish point of view. Other — " "What?" "I say," he repeated dryly, "that you should stop think- ing of the matter from a purely selfish point of view. Don't you know that that is what you are doing? You are think- ing only whether or not you, personally, desire this money. Well, other people have an interest in the question besides you. There is your mother, for example. Why not consider it from her standpoint? Why not consider it from — well, from the standpoint of Mr. Surface?" "Of Mr. Surface?" "Certainly. Suppose that in his old age he has become penitent, and wants to do what he can to right the old wrong. Would you refuse him absolution by declining to accept your own money?" "I think it will be time enough to decide that when Mr. Surface asks me for absolution." "Undoubtedly. I have particularly asked, you remember, that you do not make up your mind to anything now." "But you," said she, looking at him" steadily enough now — "I don't understand how you happen to be here apparently both as my counselor and Mr. Surface's agent." " I have a right to both capacities, I assure you." "Or — have you a habit of being — ? " She left her sentence unended, and he finished it for her in a colorless voice. OUEED 379 "Of being on two sides of a fence, perhaps you were about to say?" She made no reply. "That is what you were going to say, is n't it?" "Yes, I started to say that," she answered, "and then I thought better of it." She spoke calmly; but she was oddly disquieted by his fixed gaze, and angry with herself for feeling it. "I will tell you," said he, "how I happen to be acting in both capacities." The marks of his internal struggle broke through upon his face. For the first time, it occurred to Sharlee, as she looked at the new markings about his straight-cut mouth, that this old young man whom she had commonly seen so matter-of- fact and self-contained, might be a person of stronger emo- tions than her own. After all, what did she really know about him? As if to answer her, his controlled voice spoke. "Mr. Surface is my father. I am his son." She smothered a little cry. " Your father 1" "My name," he said, with a face of stone, "is Henry G. Surface, Jr." "Your father!" she echoed lifelessly. Shocked and stunned, she turned her head hurriedly away; her elbow rested on the broad chair-arm, and her chin sank into her hand. Surface's son looked at her. It was many months since he had learned to look at her as at a woman, and that is knowledge that is not unlearned. His eyes rested upon her piled-up mass of crinkly brown hair; upon the dark curtain of lashes lying on her cheek ; upon the firm line of the cheek, which swept so smoothly into the white neck; upon the rounded bosom, now rising and falling so fast; upon the whole pretty little person which could so stir him now to undreamed depths of his being. . . . No altruism here, Fifi ; no self-denial to want to make her happy. He began speaking quietly. " I can't tell you now how I found out all this. It is a long 38o OUEED story; you will hear it all some day. But the facts are all clear. I have been to New York and seen Tim Queed. It is — strange, is it not? Do you remember that afternoon in my office, when I showed you the letters from him? We little thought — " "Ohme!"saidSharlee. "Oh me!" She rose hastily and walked away from him, unable to bear the look on his face. For a pretense of doing something, she went to the fire and poked aimlessly at the glowing coals. As on the afternoon of which he spoke, waves of pity for the little Doctor's worse than fatherlessness swept through her ; only these waves were a thousand times bigger and stormier than those. How hardly he himself had taken his sonship she read in the strange sadness of his face. She dared not let him see how desperately sorry for him she felt; the most perfunctory phrase might betray her. Her know- ledge of his falseness stood between them like a wall ; blindly she struggled to keep it staunch, not letting her rushing pity undermine and crumble it. He had been false to her, like his father. Father and son, they had deceived and betrayed her; honor and truth were not in them. "So you see," the son was saying, " I have a close personal interest in this question of the money. Naturally it — means a good deal to me to — have as much of it as pos- sible restored. Of course there is a great deal which — he took, and which — we are not in position to restore at pre- sent. I will explain later what is to be done about that — " "Oh, don't ! " she begged. " I never want to see or hear of it again." Suddenly she turned upon him, aware that her self-control was going, but unable for her life to repress the sympathy for him which welled up overwhelmingly from her heart. "Won't you tell me something more about it? Please do! Where is he? Have you seen him — ?" "I cannot tell you — " "Oh, I will keep your confidence. You asked me if 1 OUEED 381 would. I will — won't you tell me? Is he here — in the city—?" "You must not ask me these questions," he said with some evidence of agitation. But even as he spoke, he saw knowledge dawn painfully on her face. His shelter, after all, was too small; once her glance turned that way, once her mind started upon conjec- tures, discovery had been inevitable. "Oh!" she cried, in a choked voice. . . . "It is Professor Nicolovius!" He looked at her steadily; no change passed over his face. When all was said, he was glad to have the whole truth out; and he knew the secret to be as safe with her as with him- self. "No one must know," he said sadly, "until his death. That is not far away, I think." She dropped into a chair, and suddenly buried her face in her hands. Surface's son had risen with her, but he did not resume his seat. He stood looking down at her bowed head, and the expression in his eyes, if she had looked up and captured it, might have taken her completely by surprise. His chance, indeed, had summoned him, though not for the perfect sacrifice. Circumstance had crushed out most of the joy of giving. For, first, she had suspected him, which nothing could ever blot out; and now, when she knew the truth about him, there could hardly be much left for him to give. It needed no treacherous editorial to make her hate the son of his father; their friendship was over in any case. Still, it was his opportunity to do for her something genuine and large ; to pay in part the debt he owed her — the personal and living debt, which was so much greater than thfe dead thing of principal and interest. No, no. It was not endurable that this proud little lady, who kept her head so high, should find at the last moment, this stain upon her lover's honor. She dropped her hands and lifted a white face. 382 OUEED "And you — " she began unsteadily, but checked herself and went on in a calmer voice. "And you — after what he has done to you, too — you are going to stand by him — take his name — accept that inheritance — be his son?" "What else is there for me to do?" Their eyes met, and hers were hurriedly averted. "Don't you think," he said, "that that is the only thing to do?" Again she found it impossible to endure the knowledge of his fixed gaze. She rose once more and stood at the mantel, her forehead leaned against her hand upon it, staring unsee- ingly down into the fire. "How can I tell you how fine a thing you are doing — how big — and splendid — when — " A dark red color flooded his face from neck to forehead ; it receded almost violently leaving him whiter than before. "Not at all! Not in the least!" he said, with all his old impatience. "I could not escape if I would." She seemed not to hear him. " How can I tell you that — and about how sorry I am — when all the time it seems that I can think only of — something else!" "You are speaking of the reformatory," he said, with bracing directness. There followed a strained silence. "Oh," broke from her — "how could you bear to do it?" " Don't you see that we cannot possibly discuss it? It is a question of one's honor — is n't it? It is impossible that such a thing could be argued about." "But — surely you have something to say — some ex- planation to make ! Tell me. You will not find me — a hard judge." "I'm sorry," he said brusquely, "but I can make no explanation." She was conscious that he stood beside her on the hearth- rug. Though her face was lowered and turned from him, the eye of her mind held perfectly the presentment of his face, and she knew that more than age had gone over it since she OUEED 383 had seen it last. Had any other man in the world but West been in the balance, she felt that, despite his own words, she could no longer believe him guilty. And even as it was — how could that conceivably be the face of a man who — "Won't you shake hands?" Turning, she gave him briefly the tips of fingers cold as ice. As their hands touched, a sudden tragic sense over- whelmed him that here was a farewell indeed. The light contact set him shaking; and for a moment his iron self- control, which covered torments she never guessed at, almost forsook him. ' ' Good-by . And may that God of yours who loves all that is beautiful and sweet be good to you — now and always." She made no reply ; he wheeled, abruptly, and left her. But on the threshold he was checked by the sound of her voice. The interview, from the beginning, had profoundly af- fected her; these last words, so utterly unlike his usual man- ner of speech, had shaken her through and through. For some moments she had been miserably aware that, if he would but tell her everything and throw himself on her mercy, she would instantly forgive him. And now, when she saw that she could not make him do that, she felt that tiny door, which she had thought double-locked forever, creaking open, and heard herself saying in a small, desper- ate voice: — " You did write it, did n't you?" But he paused only long enough to look at her and say, quite convincingly: — " You need hardly ask that — now — need you? " He went home, to his own bedroom, lit his small student- lamp, and sat down at his table to begin a new article. The debt of money which was his patrimony required of him that he should make every minute tell now. In old newspaper files at the State Library, he had found the facts of his father's defalcations. The total embezzle- ment from the Weyland estate, allowing for $14,000 recov- 384 OUEED ered in the enforced settlement of Surface's affairs, stood at $203,000. But that was twenty-seven years ago, and in all this time interest had been doubling and redoubling: simple interest, at 4%, brought it to $420,000; compound interest to something like $500,000, due at the present moment. Against this could be credited only his father's "nest-egg" — provided always that he could find it — estimated at not less than $50,000. That left his father's son staring at a. debt of $450,000, due and payable now. It was of course, utterly hopeless. The interest on that sum alone was $18,000 a year, and he could not earn $5000 a year to save his im- mortal soul. So the son knew that, however desperately he might strive, he would go to his grave more deeply in debt to Shar- lee Weyland than he stood at this moment. But of course it was the trying that chiefly counted. The fifty thousand dollars, which he would turn over to her as soon as he got it — how he was counting on a sum as big as that ! — would be a help ; so would the three or four thousand a year which he would surely pay toward keeping down the interest. This money in itself would be a good. But much better than that, it would stand as a gage that the son acknowledged and desired to atone for his father's dishonor. His book must stand aside now — it might be forever. Henceforward he must count his success upon a cash-regis- ter. But to-night his pencil labored and dragged. What he wrote he saw was not good. He could do harder things than force himself to sit at a table and put writing upon paper ; but over the subtler processes of his mind, which alone yields the rich fruit, no man is master. In an hour he put out his lamp,, undressed in the dark, and went to bed. He lay on his back in the blackness, and in all the world he could find nothing to think about but Sharlee Wey- land. Of all that she had done for him, in a personal way, he had at least tried to give her some idea; he was glad to remember that now. And now at the last, when he was nearer worthy OUEED 385 than ever before, she had turned him out because she be- lieved that he had stooped to dishonor. She would have for- given his sonship ; he had been mistaken about that. She had felt sympathy and sorrow for Henry Surface's son, and not repulsion, for he had read it in her face. But she could not forgive him a personal dishonor. And he was glad that, so believing, she would do as she had done; it was the per- fect thing to do; to demand honor without a blemish, or to cancel all. Never had she stood so high in his fancy ^s now when she had ordered him out of her life. His heart leapt with the knowledge that, though she would never know It, she was his true mate there, in their pure passion for Truth. Whatever else might or might not have been, the know- ledge remained with him that she herself had suspected and convicted him. In all that mattered their friendship had ended there. Distrust was unbearable between friends. It was a flaw in his little lady that she could believe him capable of baseness. . . . But not an unforgivable flaw, it would seem, since every hour that he had spent in her presence had become roses and music in his memory, and the thought that he would see her no more stabbed ceaselessly at his heart. Yes, Surface's son knew very well what was the matter with him now. The knowledge pulled him from his bed to a seat by the open window; dragged him from his chair to send him pacing on bare feet up and down his little bedroom, up and down, up and down; threw him later, much later, into his chair again, to gaze out, quiet and exhausted, over the sleep- ing city. He had written something of love in his time. In his per- fect scheme of human society, he had diagnosed with sci- entific precision the instinct of sex attraction implanted in man's being for the most obvious and grossly practical of reasons: an illusive candle-glow easily lit, quickly extin- guished when its uses were fulfilled. And lo, here was love tearing him by the throat till he choked ; an exquisite torture, a rampant passion, a devastating flame, that most glorified when it burned most deeply, aroar and ablaze forevermore. 386 OUEED He sat by the window and looked out over the sleeping city. By slow degrees, he had allowed himself to be drawn from his academic hermitry into contact with the visible life around him. And everywhere that he had touched life, it had turned about and smitten him. He had meant to be a great editor of the Post some day, and the Post had turned him out with a brand of dishonor upon his forehead. He had tried to befriend a friendless old man, and he had acquired a father whose bequest was a rogue's debt, and his name a byword and a hissing. He had let himself be befriended by a slim little girl with a passion for Truth and enough blue eyes for two, and the price of that contact was this pain in his heart which would not be still . . . which would not be still. Yet he would not have had anything different, would not have changed anything if he could. He was no longer the pure scientist in the observatory, but a bigger and better thing, a man ... A man down in the thick of the hurly- burly which we call This Life, and which, when all is said, is all that we certainly know. Not by pen alone, but also by body and mind and heart and spirit, he had taken his man's place in Society. And as for this unimagined pain that strung his whole being upon the thumb-screw, it was nothing but the measure of the life he had now, and had it more abund- antly. Oh, all was for the best, all as it should be. He knew the truth about living at last, and it is the truth that makes men free. XXX Death of the Old Professor, and how Queed finds that his List of Friends has grown; a Last Will and Testament; Exchange of Letters among Prominent Attorneys, which unhappily proves futile. ON the merriest, maddest day in March, Henry G. Sur- face, who had bitterly complained of earthly justice, slipped away to join the invisible procession which somewhere winds into the presence of the Incorruptible Judge. He went with his lips locked. At the last moment there had been faint signs of recurring consciousness; the doctor had said that there was one chance in a hundred that the dying man might have a normal moment at the end. On this chance his son had said to the nurse, alone with him in the room : — "Will you kindly leave me with him a moment? If he should be conscious there is a private question of importance that I must ask him." She left him. The young man knelt down by the bedside, and put his lips close to the old man's ear. Vainly he tried to drive his voice into that stilled consciousness, and drag from his father the secret of the hiding-place of his loot. "Father!" he said, over and over. "Father! Where is the money?" There was no doubt that the old man stirred a little. In the dim light of the room it seemed to his son that his right eye half opened, leaving the other closed in a ghastly parody of a wink, while the upper lip drew away frorti the strong teeth like an evil imitation of the old bland sneer. But that was all. So Surface died, and was gathered to his fathers. The em- bargo of secrecy was lifted ; and the very first step toward 388 OUEED righting the ancient wrong was to let the full facts be known. Henry G. Surface, Jr., took this step, in person, by at once telephoning all that was salient to the Post. Brower Williams, the Post's city editor, at the other end of the wire, called the name of his God in holy awe at the dimensions of the scoop thus dropped down upon him as from heaven ; and implored the Doc, for old time's sake, by all that he held most sacred and most dear, to say not a word till the evening papers were out, thus insuring the sensation for the Post. Mr. Williams's professional appraisement of the scoop proved not extravagant. The Post's five columns next morn- ing threw the city into something like an uproar. It is doubt- ful if you would not have to go back to the '6o's to find a newspaper story which eclipsed this one in effect. For a gen- eration, the biography of Henry G. Surface had had, in that city and State, a quality of undying interest, and the sudden denouement, more thrilling than any fiction, captured the imagination of the dullest. Nothing else was mentioned at any breakfast-table where a morning paper was taken that day; hardly anything for many breakfasts to follow.^ In homes containing boys who had actually studied Greek un- der the mysterious Professor Nicolovius at Milner's School, feeling waxed quite hysterical; while at Mrs. Paynter's, where everybody was virtually a leading actor in the moving drama, the excitement closely approached delirium. Henry G. Surface, Jr., was up betimes on the morning after his father's death — in fact, as will appear, he had not found time to go to bed at all — and the sensational effects of the Post's story were not lost upon him. As early as seven o'clock, a knot of people had gathered in front of the little house on Duke of Gloucester Street, staring curiously at the shut blinds, and telling each other, doubtless, how well they had known the dead man. When young Surface came out of the front door, an awed hush fell upon them; he was aware of their nudges, and their curious but oddly respectful stare. And this, at the very beginning, was typical of the whole day; wherever he went, he found himself an object of the frankest OUEED 389 public curiosity. But all of this interest, he early discovered, was neither cool nor impersonal. To begin with, there was the Post's story itself. As he hur- ried through it very early in the morning, the young man was struck again and again with the delicacy of the phrasing. And gradually it came to him that the young men of the Post had made very special efforts to avoid hurting the feelings of their old associate and friend the Doc. This little discovery had touched him unbelievably. And it was only part with other kindness that came to him to soften that first long day of his acknowledged sonship. Probably the sympathy ex- tended to him from various sources was not really so abund- ant, but to him, having looked for nothing, it was simply overwhelming. All day, it seemed to him, his door-bell and telephone rang, all day unexpected people of all sorts and conditions stopped him on the street — only to tell him, in many ways and sometimes without saying a word about it, that they were sorry. The very first of them to come was Charles Gardiner West, stopping on his way to the office, troubled, concerned, truly sympathetic, to express, in a beautiful and perfect way, his lasting interest in his one-time assistant. Not far behind him had come Mr. Hickok, the director who looked like James E. Winter, who had often chatted with the assistant editor in times gone by, and who spoke confidently of the day when he would come back to the Post. Beverley Byrd had come, too, manly and friendly; Plonny Neal, ill at ease for once in his life ; Evan Montague, of the Post, had asked to be allowed to make the arrangements for the funeral; Buck Klinker had actually made those arrangements. Better than most of these, perhaps, were the young men of the Mercury, raw, embarrassed, genuine young men, who, stopping him on the street, did not seem to know why they stopped him, who, lacking West's verbal felicity, could do nothing but take his hand, hot with the fear that they might be betrayed into expressing feeling, and stammer out: "Doc, if you want any- thing — why dammit. Doc — you call on me, hear?" 390 OUEED Best of all had been Buck Klinker — Buck, who had made him physically, who had dragged him into contact with life over his own protests, who had given him the first editorial he ever wrote that was worth reading — Buck, the first real friend he had ever had. It was to Buck that he had tele- phoned an hour after his father's death, for he needed help of a practical sort at once, and his one-time trainer was the man of all men to give it to him. Buck had come, constrained and silent; he was obviously awed by the Doc's sudden emergeiice into stunning notoriety. To be Surface's son was, to him, like being the son of Iscariot and Lucrezia Borgia. On the other hand, he was aware that, of Klinkers and Queeds, a Surface might proudly say: "There are no such people." So he had greeted his friend stiffly as Mr. Surface, and was amazed at the agitation with which that usually im- passive young man had put a hand upon his shoulder and said : " I 'm the same Doc always to you. Buck, only now I 'm Doc Surface instead of Doc Queed." After that everything had been all right. Buck had answered very much after the fashion of the young men of the Mercury, and then rushed off to arrange for the interment, and also to find for Doc Sur- face lodgings somewhere which heavily undercut Mrs. Payn- ter's modest prices. The sudden discovery that he was not alone in the world, that he had friends in it, real friends who believed in him and whom nothing could ever take away, shook the young man to the depths of his being. Was not this compensation for everything? Never had he imagined that people could be so kind; never had he dreamed that people's kindness could mean so much to him. In the light of this new knowledge, it seemed to him that the last scales fell from his eyes. . . . Were not these friendships, after all, the best work of a man's life? Difi he place a higher value even on his book itself, ti^hich, it seemed, he might never finish now? And nowTihere returned to him something that the dead old Colonel had told him long ago, and to-day he saw it for truth. However his father had wronged him, he would always OUEED 391 have this, at least, to bless his memory for. For it was his father who had called him to live in this city where dwelt, as the strong voice that was now still had said, the kindest and sweetest people in the world. Henry G. Surface died at half-past two o'clock on the after- noon of March 24. At one o 'clock that night, while the Post's startling story was yet in process of the making, his son stood at the mantel in Surface's sitting-room, and looked over the wreck that his hands had made. That his father's treasures were hidden somewhere here he had hardly entertained a doubt. Yet he had pulled the place all to pieces without find- ing a trace of them. The once pretty sitting-room looked, indeed, as if a tor- nado had struck it. The fireplace was a litter of broken brick and mortar ; half the floor was ripped up and the boards flung back anyhow; table drawers and bookcases had been ran- •sacked, and looked it; books rifled in vain were heaped in disorderly hummocks wherever there was room for them; everywhere a vandal hand had been, leaving behind a train of devastation and ruin. And it had all been fruitless. He had been working with- out pause since half-past six o'clock, and not the smallest clue had rewarded him. It was one of those interludes when early spring demon- strates that she could play August convincingly had she a mind to. The night was stifling. That the windows had to be shut tight, to deaden the noise of loosening brick and rip- ping board, made matters so much the worse. Surface was stripped to the waist, and it needed no second glance at him, as he stood now, to see that he was physically competent. There was no one-sided over-development here; Klinker's exercises, it will be remembered, were for all parts of the body. Shoulders stalwart, but not too broad, rounded beau- tifully into the upper arm; the chest swelled like a full sail; many a woman in that town had a larger waist. Never he moved but muscle flowed and rippled under the shining skin ; 392 OUEED he raised his right hand to scratch his left ear, and the hard blue biceps leaped out like a live thing. In fact, it had been some months since the young man had first entertained the suspicion that he could administer that thrashing to Mr. Pat whenever he felt inclined. Only it happened that he and Mr. Pat had become pretty good friends now, and it was the proof-reader's boast that he had never once made a bull in "Mr. Queed's copy" since the day of the famous fleas. In the quiet night the young man stood resting from his labors, and taking depressed thought. He was covered with grime and streaked with sweat; a ragged red stripe on his cheek, where a board had bounced up and struck him, detracted nothing from the sombreness of his appearance. Somewhere, valuable papers waited to be found ; bank-books, certainly ; very likely stock or bonds or certificates of deposit ; please God, a will. Somewhere — but where? From his fa- ther's significant remark during their last conversation, he would have staked his life that all these things were here, in easy reach. And yet — Standing precariously on the loose-piled bricks of the fire- place, he looked over the ravaged room. He felt profoundly discouraged. Success in this search meant more to him than he liked to think about, and now his chance of success had shrunk to the vanishing point. The bowels of the room lay open before his eye, and there was no hiding-place in them. He knew of nowhere else to look. The cold fear seized him that the money and the papers were hidden beyond his find- ing — that they lay tucked away in some safety-deposit vault in New York, where his .eye would never hunt them out. Surface's son leaned against the elaborate mantel, illimit- ably weary. He shifted his position ever so little; and there- upon luck did for him what reason would never have done. The brick on which his right foot rested turned under his weight and he lost his foothold. To save himself, he caught the mantel-top with both hands, and the next moment pitched heavily backward to the floor. OUEED 393 The mantel, in fact, had come off in his hands. It pitched ' to the floor with him, speeding his fall, thumping upon his chest Uke a vigorous adversary. But the violence of his de- scent only made him the more sharply aware that this strange mantel had left its moorings as though on greased rollers. His heart playing a sudden drum-beat, he threw the carven timber from him and bounded to his feet. The first flying glance showed him the strange truth : his blundering feet had marvelously stumbled into his father's arcana. For he looked, not at an unsightly mass of splintered laths and torn wall-paper and shattered plaster, but into as neat a little cupboard as a man could wish. The cupboard was as wide as the mantel itself; lined and ceiled with a dark red wood which beautifully threw back the glare of the dancing gas-jet. It was half-full of things, old books, letters, bundles of papers held together with rub- ber bands, canvas bags — all grouped and piled in the most orderly way about a large tin dispatch-box. This box drew the young man's gaze like a sudden shout; he was hardly on his feet before he had sprung forward and jerked it out. Instantly the treacherous bricks threw him again; sprawled on the floor he seized one of them and smashed through the hasp at a blow. Bit by bit the illuminating truth came out. In all his own calculations, close and exact as he had thought them, he had lost sight of one simple but vital fact. In the years that he had been in prison, his father had spent no money beyond the twenty-five dollars a month to Tim Queed ; and com- paratively little in the years of his wanderings. In all this time the interest upon his "nest-egg" had been steadily accumulating. Five per cent railroad bonds, and certificates of deposit in four different banks, were the forms in which the money had been tucked away, by what devilish clever- ness could only be imagined. But the simple fact was that his father had died worth not less than two hundred thou- sand dollars and probably more. And this did not include 394 QUEED the Jiouse, which, it appeared, his father had bought, and not leased as he said ; nor did it include four thousand four hundred dollars in gold and banknotes which he found in the canvas sacks after his first flying calculation was made. ' Early in the morning, when the newsboys were already crying the Post upon the streets, young Henry Surface came at last upon the will. It was very brief, but entirely clear and to the point. His father had left to him without conditions, everything of which he died possessed. The will was dated in June of the previous summer — he recalled a two days' ab- sence of his father's at that time — and was witnessed, in a villainous hand, by Timothy Queed. There were many formalities to be complied with, and some of them would take time. But within a week matters were on a solid enough footing to warrant a first step; and about this time Sharlee Weyland read, at her breakfast-table one morning, a long letter which surprised and disturbed her very much. The letter came from a well-known firm of attorneys. At great length it rehearsed the misfortunes that had befallen the Weyland estate, through the misappropriations of the late Henry G. Surface. But the gist of this letter, briefly put, was that the late Henry G. Surface had died possessed of a property estimated to be worth two hundred thousand dol- lars, either more or less; that this property was believed to be merely the late trustee's appropriations from the Wey- land estate, with accrued interest; that "our client Mr. Henry G. Surface, Jr., heir by will to his father's ostensible property," therefore purposed to pay over this sum to the Weyland estate, as soon as necessary formalities could be complied with ; and that, further, our client, Mr. Henry G. Surface, Jr., assumed personal responsibility " for the resi- due due to your late father's estate, amounting to one hun- dred and seventeen thousand dollars, either more or less, with interest since 1881; and this debt, he instructs us to OUEED 395 say, he will discharge from time to time, as his own resources will permit." So wrote Messrs. Blair and Jamieson to Miss Charlotte Lee Weyland, congratulating her, "in conclusion, upon the strange circumstances which have brought you, after so long an interval, justice and restitution," and begging to remain very respectfully hers. To which letter after four days' in- terval, they received the following reply: Messrs. Blair & Jamieson, Commonwealth Building, City. Dear Sirs: — Our client, Miss C. L. Weyland, of this city, instructs us to advise you, in reply to your letter of the 4th inst., directed to her, that, while thank- ing you for the expression of intention therein contained anent the pro- perty left by the late Henry G. Surface, and very cordially appreciating the spirit actuating Mr. Henry G. Surface, Jr., in the matter, she never- theless feels herself without title or claim to said property, and therefore positively declines to accept it, in whole or in any part. Respectfully yours. Ampersand, Bolling and Byrd. A more argumentative and insistent letter from Messrs. Blair and Jamieson was answered with the same brief posi- tiveness by Messrs. Ampersand, Bolling and Byrd. There- after, no more communications were exchanged by the at- torneys. But a day or two after her second refusal, Sharlee Weyland received another letter about the matter of dispute, this time a more personal one. The envelope was directed in a small neat hand which she knew very well ; she had first seen it on sheets of yellow paper in Mrs. Paynter's dining- room. The letter said : Dear Miss Weyland: — Your refusal to allow my father's estate to restore to you, so far as it can, the money which it took from you, and thus to right, in part, a grave wrong, is to me a great surprise and disappointment. I had not thought it possible that you, upon due reflection, could take a position the one ob- vious effect of which is to keep a son permanently under the shadow of his father's dishonor. 396 OUEED Do not, of course, misunderstand me. I have known you too well to believe for a moment that you can be swayed by ungenerous motives. I am very sure that you are taking now the part which you believe most generous. But that view is, I assure you, so far from the real facts that I can only conclude that you have refused to learn what these facts are. Both legally and rnorally the money is yours. No one else on earth has a shadow of claim to it. I most earnestly beg that, in fairness to me, you will at least give my attorneys the chance to convince yours that what I write here is true and unanswerable. Should you adhere to your present position, the money will, of course, be trusteed for your benefit, nor will a penny of it be touched until it is ' accepted, if not by you, then byyour heirs or assigns. But I cannot be- lieve that you will continue to find magnanimity in shirking your just responsibilities, and denying to me my right to wipe out this stain. Very truly yours, Henry G. Surface, Jr. No answer ever came to this letter, and there the matter rested through March and into the sultry April. XXXI God moves in a Mysterious Way: how the Finished Miss Avery appears as the Instrument of Providence; how Sharlee sees her Idol of Many Years go toppling in the Dust, and how it is her Turn to meditate in the Still Watches. THE print danced before his outraged eyes ; his chest heaved at the revolting evidence of man's duplicity; and Charles Gardiner West laid down his morning's Post with a hand that shook. Meachy T. Bangor announces his candidacy for the nomina- tion for Mayor, subject to the Democratic primary. For West had not a moment's uncertainty as to what this announcement meant. Meachy T. Bangor spoke, nay in- vented, the language of the tribe. He was elect of the elect; what the silent powers that were thought was his thought; their ways were his ways, their people his people. When Meachy T. Bangor announced that he was a candidate for the nomination for Mayor, it meant that the all-powerful ma- chine had already nominated him for Mayor, and whom the organization nominated it elected. Meachy T. Bangor! Plonny Neal's young, progressive candidate of the reformer type ! Bitterness flooded West's soul when he thought of Plonny. Had the boss been grossly deceived or grossly deceiving? Could that honest and affectionate eye, whose look of frank admirjirtion had been almost embarrassing, have covered base and deliberate treachery? Was it possible that he, West, who had always been confident that he could see as far into a millstone as another, had been a cheap trickster's easy meat? Day by day, since the appearance of the reformatory ar- ticle. West had waited for some sign of appreciation and un- derstanding from those on the inside. None had come. Not 398 OUEED a soul except himself, and Plonny, had appeared aware that he, by a masterly compromise, had averted disaster from the party, and clearly revealed himself as the young man of des- tiny. On the contrary, the House spokesmen, apparently ut- terly blind to any impending crisis, had, in the closing hours of the session, voted away some eighty thousand dollars of the hundred thousand rescued by West from the reforma- tory, in a multiplication of offices which it was difficult to regard as absolutely indispensable in a hard times year. This action, tallying so closely with what his former assist- ant had predicted, had bewildered and unsettled West; the continuing silence of the leaders — "the other leaders," he had found himself saying — had led him into anxious spec- ulations; and now, in a staggering burst, the disgraceful truth was revealed to him. They had used him, tricked and used him like a smooth tool, and having used him, had de- liberately passed him, standing fine and patient in the line, to throw the mantle over the corrupt and unspeakable Bangor. By heavens, it was not to be endured. Was it for this that he had left Blaines College, where a career of honorable use- fulness lay before him ; that he had sacrificed personal wishes and ambitions to the insistent statement that his City and State had need of him ; that he had stood ten months in the line without a murmur ; and that at last, confronted with the necessity of choosing between the wishes of his personal in- timates and the larger good, he had courageously chosen the latter and suffered in silence the suspicion of having played false with the best friends he had in the world? Was it for this that he had lost his valuable assistant, whose place he could never hope to fill? — for this that he was referred to habitually by an evening contemporary as the Plonny Neal organ? He was thoroughly disgusted with newspaper work this morning, disgusted with the line, disgusted with hopeful ef- forts to uplift the people. What did his Post work really amount to? — unremitting toil, the ceaseless forcing up of OUEED 399 immature and insincere opinions, no thanks or apprecia- tion anywhere, and at the end the designation of the Plonny Neal organ. What did the uplift amount to? Could progress really ever be forced a single inch? And why should he wear out his life in the selfless service of those who, it seemed, acknowledged no obligation to him? As for public life, if this was a sample, the less he saw of it the better. He would take anything in the world sooner than a career of hypocrisy, double-dealing and treachery, of dirty looting in the name of the public good, of degrading traffic with a crew of liars and confidence men. But through all the young man's indignation and resent- ment there ran an unsteadying doubt, a miserable doubt of himself. Had his motives in the reformatory matter been as absolutely spotless as he had charmed himself into be- lieving? . . . What manner of man was he? Was he really wanting in permanent convictions about anything? . . . Was it possible, was it thinkable or conceivable, that he was a complaisant invertebrate whom the last strong man that had his ear could play upon like a flute? West passed a most unhappy morning. But at lunch, at the club, it was his portion to have his buoyant good-humor completely restored to him. He fell in with ancient boon companions ; they made much of him ; involved him in gay talk; smoothed him down, patted him on the head, found his self-esteem for him, and handed it over in its pristine vigor. Before he had sat half an hour at the merry table, he could look back at his profound depression of the morning with smiling wonder. Where in the world had he gotten his terrible grouch? Not a thing in the world had happened, except that the mayoralty was not going to be handed to him on a large silver platter. Was that such a fearful loss after all? On the contrary, was it not rather a good rid- dance? Being Mayor, in all human probability, would be a horrible bore. It was a mild, azure, zephyrous day," spring at her bright- est and best. West, descending the club steps, sniffed the 400 OUEED fragrant air affectionately, and was hanged if he would go near the office on such an afternoon. Let the Post readers plod along to-morrow with an editorial page both skimpy and inferior; anything he gave them would still be too good for them, middle-class drabs and dullards that they were. The big red automobile was old now, and needed paint, but it still ran staunch and true; and Miss Avery had a face, a form, and a sinuous graceful manner, had veils and hats and sinuous graceful coats, that would have glorified a far less worthy vehicle. And she drove divinely. By in- vitation she took the wheel that afternoon, and with sure, clever hands whipped the docile leviathan over the hills and far away. The world knows how fate uses her own instruments in her own way, frequently selecting far stranger ones than the delightful and wealthy Miss Avery. Now for more than a year this accomplished girl had been thinking that if Charles Gardiner West had anything to say to her, it was high time that he should say it. If she had not set herself to find out what was hobbling the tongue of the man she wanted, she would have been less than a woman ; and Miss Avery was a good deal more. Hence, when she had seen West with Sharlee Weyland, and in particular on the last two or three times she had seen West with Sharlee Weyland, she had watched his manner toward that lady with profound mis- givings, of the sort which starts every true woman to fight- ing for her own. Now Miss Avery had a weapon, in the shape of valuable knowledge, or, -at any rate, a valuable suspicion that had lately reached her: the suspicion, in short, which had some- how crept abroad as suspicions will, that West had done a certain thing which another man was supposed to have done. Therefore, when they turned homeward in the soft dusk, her man having been brought to exactly the right frame of mind, she struck with her most languorous voice. "How is that dear little Charlotte Weyland? It seems to OUEED 401 me I have n't seen her for a year, though it was positively only last week." "Oh! She seemed very well when I saw her last." So Mr. West, of the lady he was going to marry. For, though he had never had just the right opportunity to com- plete the sweet message he had begun at the Byrds' one night, his mind was still quite made up on that point. It was true that the atmosphere of riches which fairly exuded from the girl now at his side had a very strong appeal for his lower instincts. But he was not a man to be ridden by his lower instincts. No; he had set his foot upon the fleshpots; his idealistic nature had overcome the world. Miss Avery, sublimely unaware that Mr. West was going to offer marriage to her rival during the present month, the marriage itself to take place in October, indolently con- tinued : — "To my mind she's quite the most attractive dear little thing in town. I suppose she 's quite recovered from her dis- appointment over the — hospital, or whatever it was?" "Oh, I believe so. I never heard her mention it but once." West's pleasant face had clouded a little. Through her fluttering veil she noted that fact with distinct satisfaction. "I never met that interesting young Mr. Surface," said she, sweeping the car around a curve in the white road and evading five women in a surrey with polished skill. "But — truly, I have found myself thinking of him and feeling sorry for him more than once." "Sorry for him — What about?" "Oh, haven't you heard, then? It's rather mournful. You see, when Charlotte Weyland found out that he had written a certain editorial in the Post — you know more about this part of it than I — " "But he did n't write it," said West, unhesitatingly. "I wrote it myself." "You?" She looked at him with frank surprise in her eyes; not too much frank surprise; rather as one who feels much but en- 402 OUEED deavors to suppress it for courtesy's sake. " Forgive me — 1 did n't know. There has been a little horrid gossip — but of course nearly every one has thought that he — " "I'm sure I'm not responsible for what people think," said West, a little aggressively, but with a strangely sinking heart. ' ' There has been not the slightest mystery or attempt at concealment — " "Oh! Then of course Charlotte knows all about it now?" "I don't know whether she does or not. When I tried to tell her the whole story," explained West, "soon after the incident occurred, she was so agitated about it, the subject seemed so painful to her, that I was forced to give it up. You can understand my position. Ever since, I have been waiting for an opportunity to take her quietly and straighten out the whole matter for her in a calm and rational way. For her part she has evidently regarded the subject as happily closed. Why under heaven should I press it upon her — merely to gain the academic satisfaction of convincing her that the Post acted on information superior and judgment sounder than her own?" Miss Avery, now devoting herself to her chauffeur's du- ties through a moment of silence, was no match for Mr. West at the game of ethical debate, and knew it. However, she held a very strong card in her pongee sleeve, and she knew that too. ' ' I see — of course. You know I think you have been quite right through it all. And yet — you won't mind? — I can't help feeling sorry for Mr. Surface." "Very well — you most mysterious lady. Go on and tell me why you can't help feeling sorry for Mr. Surface." Miss Avery told him. How she knew anything about the private affairs of Mr. Surface and Miss Weyland, of which it is certain that neither of them had ever spoken, is a mys- tery, indeed : but Gossip is Argus and has a thousand ears to boot. Miss Avery was careful to depict Sharlee's attitude toward the unfortunate Mr. Surface as just severe enough to suggest to West that he must act at once, and not so OUEED 403 severe as to suggest to him — conceivably — the desir- ability, from a selfisli point of view, of not acting at all. It was a task for a diplomat, which is to say a task for a Miss Avery. " Rather fine of him, was n't it, to assume all the blame? — particularly if it's true, as people say," concluded Miss Avery, "that the man's in love with her and she cares no- thing for him." "Fine — splendid — but entirely unnecessary," said West. The little story had disturbed him greatly. He had had no knowledge of any developments between Sharlee and his former assistant ; and now he was unhappily conscious that he ought to have spoken weeks ago. "I'm awfully sorry to hear this," he resumed, "for I am much attached to that boy. Still — if, as you say, every- thing is all right now — " "Oh, but I don't know at all that it is," said Miss Avery, hastily. "That is just the point. The last I heard of it, she had forbidden him her house." "That won't do," said Charles Gardiner West, in a burst of generosity. "I'll clear up that difficulty before I sleep to-night." And he was as good as his word, or, let us say, almost as good. The next night but one he called upon Sharlee Wey- land with two unalterable purposes in his mind. One was to tell her the full inside history of the reformatory article from the beginning. The other was to notify her in due form that she held his heart in permanent captivity. To Miss Avery, it made not the slightest difference whether the gifted and charming editor of the Post sold out his prin- ciples for a price every morning in the month. At his pleas- ure he might fracture all of the decalogue that was refinedly fracturable, and so long as he rescued his social position intact from the ruin, he was her man just the same. But she had an instinct, surer than reasoned wisdom, that Shar- lee Weyland viewed these matters differently. Therefore 404 OUEED she had sent West to make his little confession, face to face. And therefore West, after an hour of delightful ttte-d,-ttte in the charming little back parlor, stiffened himself up, his brow sicklying o'er with the pale cast of disagreeable thought, and began to make it. " I 've got to tell you something about — a subject that won't be welcome to you," he plunged in, rather lugubri- ously. "I mean — the reformatory." Sharlee's face, which had been merry and sweet, instantly changed and quieted at that word ; interest sprang full- armed in her deep blue eyes. " Have you? Tell me anything about it you wish." "You remember that — last editorial in th.e J' ost?" "Do you think that I forget so easily?" West hardly liked that reply. Nor had he ever supposed that he would find the subject so difificult. "Well! I was surprised and — hurt to learn — recently — that you had — well, had been rather severe with Surface, under the impression that — the full responsibility for that article was his." Sharlee sat in the same flowered arm-chair she had once occupied to put this same Surface, then known as little Dr. Queed, in his place. Her heart warmed to West for his gen- erous impulse to intercede. Still, she hardly conceived that her treatment of Mr. Surface was any concern of Mr. West's. "And so?" "I must tell you," he said, oddly uneasy under her straightforward look, "that — that you have made a mis- take. The responsibility is mine." "Ah, you mean that you, as the editor, are willing to take it." "No," said West — "no " ; and then suddenly he felt like a rash suicide, repentant at the last moment. Already the waters were rushing over his head ; he felt a wild impulse to clutch at the life-belt she had flung out to him. It is to be remembered to his credit that he conquered it. "No, — I — I wrote the article myself." OUEED 405 "You?" Her monosyllable had been Miss Avery's, but there re- semblance parted. Sharlee sat still in her chair, and pre- sently her lashes fluttered and fell. To West's surprise, a beautiful color swept upward from her throat to drown in her rough dark hair. "Oh," said she, under her breath, "I'm glad — so glad 1" West heaved a great sigh of relief. It was all over, and she was glad. Had n't he known all along that a woman will always forgive everything in the man she loves? She was glad because he had told her when another man might have kept silent. And yet her look perplexed him ; her words per- plexed him. Undoubtedly she must have something more to say than a mere expression of vague general gladness over the situation. "Need I say that I never intended there should be any doubt about the matter? I meant to explain it all to you long a.go, only there never seemed to be any suitable opportun- Sharlee's color died away. In silence she raised her eyes and looked at him. " I started to tell you all about it once, at the time, but you know," he said, with a little nervous laugh, "you seemed to find the subject so extremely painful then — that I thought I had better wait till you could look at it more calmly." Still she said nothing, but only sat still in her chair and looked at him. "I shall always regret," continued West, laboriously, " that my — silence, which I assure you I meant in kindness, should have — Why do you look at me that way, Miss Weyland?" he said, with a quick change of voice. "I don't understand you." Sharlee gave a small start and said: "Was I looking af you in any particular way?" " You looked as mournful," said West, with that same little laugh, "as though you had lost your last friend. Now — " 4o6 OUEED "No, not my last one," said Sharlee. "Well, don't look so sad about it," he said, in a voice of affectionate raillery. "I am quite unhappy enough over it without — " "I'm afraid I can't help you to feel happier — not to- night. If I look sad, you see, it is because I feel that way." "Sad?" he echoed, bewildered. "Why should you be sad now — when it is all going to be straightened out — when — " "Well, don't you think it's pretty sad — the part that can't ever be straightened out?" Unexpectedly she got up, and walked slowly away, a dis- concerting trick she had ; wandered about the room, looking about her something like a stranger in a picture gallery; touching a bowl of flowers here, there setting a book to rights ; and West, rising too, following her sombrely with his eyes, had never wanted her so much in all his life. Presently she returned to him; asked him to sit down again; and, still standing herself, began speaking in a quiet kind voice which, nevertheless, rang ominously in his ears from her first word. "I remember," said Sharlee, "when I was a very little girl, not more than twelve years old, I think, I first heard about you — about Charles Gardiner West. You were hardly grown then, but already people were talking about you. I don't remember now, of course, just what they said, but it must have been something very splendid, for I remember the sort of picture I got. I have always liked for men to be very clean and high-minded — I think because my father was that sort of man. I have put that above intel- lect, and abilities, and what would be called attractions ; and so what they said about you made a great impression on me. You know how very young girls are — how they like to have the figure of a prince to spin their little romances around . . . and so I took you for mine. You were my knight without fear and without reproach ... Sir Galahad. When I was six- teen, I used to pass you in the street and wonder if you OUEED 407 did n't hear my heart thumping. You never looked at me ; you had n't any idea who I was. And that is a big and fine thing, I think — to be the hero of somebody you don't even know by name . . . though of course not so big and fine as to be the hero of somebody who knows you very well. And you were that to me, too. When I grew up and came to know you, I still kept you on that pedestal you never saw. I measured you by the picture I had carried for so many yeaiiS, and I was not disappointed. All that my little girl's fancy had painted you, you seemed to be. I look back now over the last few years of my life, and so much that I have liked most — that has been dearest — has centred about you. Yes, more than once I have been quite sure that I . . . was in love with you. You wonder that I can show you my heart this way? I could n't of course, except — well — that it is all past now. And that is what seems sad to me. . . . There never was any prince; my knight is dead; and Sir Galahad I got out of a book. . . . Don't you think that that is pretty sad?" West, who had been looking at her with a kind of fright- ened fascination, hastily averted his eyes, for he saw that her own had suddenly filled with tears. She turned away from him again ; a somewhat painful silence ensued ; and pre- sently she broke it, speaking in a peculiarly gentle voice, and not looking at him. "I'm glad that you told me — at last. I'll be glad to remember that . . . and I'm always your friend. But don't you think that perhaps we 'd better finish our talk some other time?" "No," said West. "No." He pulled himself together, struggling desperately to throw off the curious benumbing inertia that was settling down upon him. "You are doing me an injustice. A most tremendous injustice. You have misunderstood everything from the beginning. I must explain — " "Don't you think that argument will only make it all so much worse?" 408 OUEED " Nothing could possibly be worse for me than to have you think of me and speak to me in this way." Obediently she sat down, her face still and sad ; and West, pausing a moment to marshal his thoughts into convincing form, launched forth upon his defense. From the first he felt that he did not make a success of it; was not doing himself justice. Recent events, in the legisla- ture and with reference to Meachy T. Bangor, had greatly weakened his confidence in his arguments. Even to himself beseemed to have been- strangely "easy"; his exposition sounded labored and hollow in his own ears. But worse than this was the bottomless despondency into which the girl's brief autobiography had strangely cast him. A vast mysterious depression had closed over him, which entirely robbed him of his usual adroit felicity of speech. He brought his explanation up to the publication of the unhappy article, and there abruptly broke off. A long silence followed his ending, and at last Sharlee said : — "I suppose a sudden change of heart in the middle of a fight is always an unhappy thing. It always means a good deal of pain for somebody. Still — sometimes they must come, and when they do, I suppose the only thing to do is to meet them honestly — though, personally, I think I should always trust my heart against my head. But . . . if you had only come to us that first morning and frankly explained just why you deserted us — if you had told us all this that you have just told me — " "That is exactly what I wanted and intended to do," in- terrupted West. "I kept silent out of regard for you." "Out of regard for me?" "When I started to tell you all about it, that night at Mrs. Byrd's, it seemed to me that you had brooded over the matter until you had gotten in an overwrought and — over- strung condition about it. It seemed to me the considerate thing not to force the unwelcome topic upon you, but rather to wait — " OUEED 409 "But had you the right to consider my imaginary feelings in such a matter between yourself and . . . ? And besides, you did not quite keep silent, you remember. You said something that led me to think that you had discharged Mr. Surface for writing that article." " I did not intend you to think anything of the kind. Any- thing in the least like that. If my words were ambiguous, it was because, seeing, as I say, that you were in an overstrung condition, I thought it best to let the whole matter rest until you could look at it calmly and rationally." She made no reply. "But why dwell on that part of it?" said West, beseech- ingly. "It was simply a wretched misunderstanding all around. I 'm sorrier than I can tell you for my part in it. I have been greatly to blame — I can see that now. Can't you let bygones be bygones? I have come to you voluntarily and told you—" "Yes, after six weeks. Why, I was the best friend he had, Mr. West, and — Oh, me! How can I bear to remember what I said to him!" She turned her face hurriedly away from him. West, much moved, struggled on. " But don't you see — I did n't know it! I never dreamed of such a thing. The moment I heard how matters stood — " "Did it never occur to you in all this time that it might be assumed that Mr. Surface, having written all the reforma- tory articles, had written this one?" "I did not think of that. I was short-sighted, I own. And of course," he added more eagerly, " I supposed that he had told you himself." "You don't know him," said Sharlee. A proud and beautiful look swept over her face. West rose, looking wretchedly unhappy, and stood, irresolute, facing her. "Can't you — forgive me?" he asked presently, in a painful voice. Sharlee hesitated. 4IO OUEED "Don't you know I said that it would only make things worse to talk about it to-night?" she said gently. "Every- thing you say seems to put us further and further apart. Why, there is nothing for me to forgive, Mr. West. There was a situation, and it imposed a certain conduct on you; that is the whole story. I don't come into it at all. It is all a matter between you and — your own — " "You do forgive me then? But no — you talk to me just as though you had learned all this from somebody else — as though I had not come to you voluntarily and told you everything." Sharlee did not like to look at his face, which she had always seen before so confident and gay. "No," said she sadly — "for I am still your friend." "Friend!" He echoed the word wildly, contemptuously. He was just on the point of launching into a passionate speech, painting the bitterness of friendship to one who must have true love or nothing, and flinging his hand and his heart impetuously at her feet. But looking at her stillface, he checked him- self, and just in time. Shaken by passion as he was, he was yet enough himself to understand that she would not listen to him. Why should he play the spendthrift and the wan- ton with his love? Why give her, for nothing, the sterile satisfaction of rejecting him, for her to prize, as he knew girls did, as merely one more notch upon her gun? Leaving his tempestuous exclamation hanging in mid-air. West stiffly shook Sharlee's hand and walked blindly out of the room. He went home, and to bed, like one moving in a horrible dream. That night, and through all the next day, he felt utterly bereft and wretched : something, say, as though flood and pestilence had swept through his dear old town and car- ried off everything and everybody but himself. He crawled alone in a smashed world. On the second day following, he found himself able to light a cigarette ; and, glancing about him with faint pluckings of convalescent interest, began to OUEED 4" recognize some landmarks. On the third day, he was frankly wondering whether a girl with such overstrained, not to say hysterical ideals of conduct, would, after all, be a very comfortable person to spend one's life with. On the evening of this day, about half -past eight o'clock, he emerged from his mother's house, light overcoat over his arm in deference to his evening clothes, and started briskly down the street. On the second block, as luck had it, he overtook Tommy Semple walking the same way. "Gardiner," said Semple, "when are you going to get over all this uplift rot and come back to Semple and West?" The question fell in so marvelously with West's mood of acute discontent with all that his life had been for the past two years, that it looked to him strangely like Providence. The easy ways of commerce appeared vastly alluring to him; his income, to say truth, had suffered sadly in the cause of the public; never had the snug dollars drawn him so strongly. He gave a slow, curious laugh. "Why, hang it, Tommy! I don't know but I 'm ready to listen to your siren spiel — now!" In the darkness Sample's eyes gleamed. His receipts had never been so good since West left him. "That 's the talk ! I need you in my business, old boy. By the bye, you can come in at bully advantage if you can move right away. I 'm going to come talk with you to- morrow." "Right's the word," said West. At the end of that block a large house stood in a lawn, half hidden from the street by a curtain of trees. From its con- cealed veranda came a ripple of faint, slow laughter, adver- tising the presence of charming society. West halted. "Here's a nice house, Tommy; I think I'll look in. See you to-morrow." Semple, walking on, glanced back to see what house it was. It proved to be the brownstone palace leased for three years by old Mr. Avery, formerly of Mauch Chunk but now of Ours. 412 OUEED Sharlee, too, retired from her painful interview with West with a sense of irreparable loss. Her idol of so many years had, at a word, toppled off into the dust, and not all the king's horses could ever get him back again. It was like a death to her, and in most ways worse than a death. She lay awake a long time that night, thinking of the two men who, for she could not say how long, had equally shared first place in her thoughts. And gradually she read them both anew by the blaze lit by one small incident. She could not believe that West was deliberately false; she was certain that he was not deliberately false. But she saw now, as by a sudden searchlight flung upon him, that her one-time paladin had a fatal weakness. He could not be honest with himself. He could believe anything that he wanted to believe. He could hypnotize himself at will by the enchanting music of his own imaginings. He had pretty graces and he told himself they were large, fine abilities ; dim emotions and he thought they were ideals; vague gropings of ambition, and when he had waved the hands of his fancy over them, presto, they had become great dominating pur- poses. He had fluttered fitfully from business to Blaines College; from the college to the Post; before long he would flutter on from the Post to something else — always falling short, always secretly disappointed, everywhere a failure as a man, though few might know it but himself. West's trouble, in fact, was that he was not a man at all. He was weakest where a real man is strongest. He was merely a chameleon taking his color from whatever he happened to light upon ; a handsome boat which could never get any- where because it had no rudder; an ornamental butterfly driving aimlessly before the nearest breeze. He meant well, in a general way, but his good intentions proved descending paving-stones because he was constitutionally incapable of meaning anything very hard. West had had everything in the beginning except money; and he had the faculty of making all of that he wanted. Queed — she found that name still clinging to him in her OUEED 413 thoughts — had had nothing in the beginning except his fearless honesty. In everything else that a man should be, he had seemed to her painfully destitute. But because through everything he had held unflinchingly to his honesty, he had been steadily climbing the heights. He had passed West long ago, because their faces were set in opposite di- rections. West had had the finest distinctions of honor care- fully instilled into him from his birth. Queed had deduced his, raw, from his own unswerving honesty. And the first acid test of a real situation showed that West's honor was only burnished and decorated dross, while Queed's, which he had made himself, was as fine gold. In that test, all super- ficial trappings were burned and shriveled away; men were made to show their men's colors; and the "queer little man with the queer little name" had instantly cast off his re- splendent superior because contact with his superior's dis- honesty was degrading to him. Yet in the same breath, he had allowed his former chief to foist off that dishonesty upon his own clean shoulders, and borne the detestable burden without demand for sympathy or claim for gratitude. And this was the measure of how, as Queed had climbed by his honesty, his whole nature had been strengthened and refined. For if he had begun as the most unconscious and merciless of egoists, who could sacrifice little Fifi to his comfort with- out a tremor, he had ended with the supreme act of purest altruism: the voluntary sacrifice of himself to save a man whom in his heart he must despise. But was that the supreme altruism? What had it cost him, after all, but her friendship? Perhaps he did not regard that as so heavy a price to pay. Sharlee turned her face to the wall. In the darkness, she felt the color rising at her throat and sweeping softly but resistlessly upward. And she found herself feverishly cling- ing to all that her little Doctor had said, and looked, in all their meetings which, remembered now, gave her the right to think that their parting had been hard for him, too. Yet it was not upon their parting that her mind busied 414 OUEED itself most, but upon thoughts of their remeeting. The rela- tions which she had thought to exist between them had, it was clear, been violently reversed. The one point now was for her to meet the topsy-turveyed situation as swiftly, as generously, and as humbly as was possible. If she had been a man, she would have gone to him at once, hunted him up this very night, and told him in the most groveUng language at her command, how infinitely sorry and ashamed she was. Lying wide-eyed in her little white bed, she composed a number of long speeches that she, as a man, would have made to him; embarrassing speeches which he, as a man, or any other man that ever lived, would never have endured for a moment. But she was not a man, she was a girl ; and girls were not allowed to go to men, and say frankly and honestly what was in their hearts. She was not in the least likely to meet him by acci- dent ; the telephone was unthinkable. There remained only to write him a letter. Yes, but what to say in the letter? There was the critical and crucial question. No matter how artful and cajol- ing an apology she wrote, she knew exactly how he would treat it. He would write a civil, formal reply, assuring her that her apology was accepted, and there the matter would stand forever. For she had put herself terribly in the wrong; she had betrayed a damning weakness ; it was extremely pro- bable that he would never care to resume friendship with one who had proved herself so hatefully mistrustful. Then, too, he was evidently very angry with her about the money. Only by meeting for a long, frank talk could she ever hope to make things right again; but not to save her life could she think of any form of letter which would bring such a m^eeting to pass. Pondering the question, she fell asleep. All next day, when- ever she had a minute and sometimes when she did not, she pondered it, and the next, and the next. Her heart smote her for the tardiness of her reparation ; but stronger than this was her fear of striking and missing fire. And at last an idea OUEED 415 came to her; an idea so big and beautiful that it first startled and dazzled her, and then set her heart to singing; the per- fect idea which would blot away the whole miserable mess at one stroke. She sat down and wrote Mr. Surface five lines, asking him to be kind enough to call upon her in regard to the business matter about which he had written her a few weeks before. , She wrote this note from her house, one night; she ex- pected, of course, that he would come there to see her; she had planned out exactly where they were each to sit, and even large blocks of their conversation. But the very next morn- ing, before 10 o'clock, there came a knock upon the Depart- mental door and he walked into her office, looking more mat- ter-of-fact and business-like than she had ever seen him. XXXII Second Meeting between a Citizen and the Great Pleasure-Dog Behemoth, involving Plans for Two New Homes. AND this time they did not have to go into the hall to talk. No sooner had the opening door revealed the face of young Mr. Surface than Mr. Dayne, the kind-faced Secre- tary, reached hastily for his hat. In the same breath with his " Come in " and " Good-morning," he was heard to men- tion to the Assistant Secretary something about a little urgent business downtown. Mr. Dayne acted so promptly that he met the visitor on the very threshold of the office. The clergyman held out his hand with a light in his manly gray eye. "I'm sincerely glad to see you, Mr. Queed, to have the chance — " "Surface, please." Mr. Dayne gave his hand an extra wring. "Mr. Surface, you did a splendid thing. I 'm glad of this chance to tell you so, and to beg your forgiveness for having done you a grave injustice in my thoughts." The young man stared at him. " I have nothing to forgive you for, Mr. Dayne. In fact, I have no idea what you are talking about." But Mr. Dayne did not enlighten him; in fact he was already walking briskly down the hall. Clearly the man had business that would not brook an instant's delay. Hat in hand, the young man turned, plainly puzzled, and found himself looking at a white-faced little girl who gave back his look with brave steadiness. " Do you think you can forgive me, too? " she asked in a very small voice. OUEED 417 He came three steps forward, into the middle of the room, and there halted dead, staring at her with a look of searching inquiry. "I don't understand this," he said, in his controlled voice. "What are you talking about?" "Mr. West," said Sharlee, "has told me all about it. About the reformatory. And I'm sorry." There she stuck. Of all the speeches of prostrate yet some- how noble self-flagellation which in the night seasons she had so beautifully polished, not one single word could she now recall. Yet she continued to meet his gaze, for so should apologies be given though the skies fall ; and she watched as one fascinated the blood slowly ebb from his close-set face. "Under the circumstances," he said abruptly, "it was hardly a — a judicious thing to do. However, let us say no more about it." He turned away from her, obviously unsteadied for all his even voice. And as he turned, his gaze, which had shifted only to get away from hers, was suddenly arrested and be- came fixed. In the corner of the room, beside the bookcase holding the works of Conant, Willoughby, and Smathers, lay the great pleasure-dog Behemoth, leonine head sunk upon two mas- sive outstretched paws. But Behemoth was not asleep; on the contrary he was overlooking the proceedings in the office with an air of intelligent and paternal interest. Between Behemoth and young Henry Surface there passed a long look. The young man walked slowly across the room to where the creature lay, and, bending down, patted him on the head. He did it with indescribable awk- wardness. Certainly Behemoth must have perceived what was so plain even to a human critic, that here was the first dog this man had ever patted in his life. Yet, being a pleas- ure-dog, he was wholly civil about it. In fact, after a lidless scrutiny unembarrassed by any recollections of his last meet- ing with this young man, he declared for friendship. 41 8 OUEED Gravely he lifted a bchemothian paw, and gravely the young man shook it. To Behemoth young Mr. Surface addressed the following remarks : — "West was simply deceived — hoodwinked by men in= finitely cleverer than he at that sort of thing. It was a manly thing — his coming to you now and telling you ; much harder than never to — have made the mistake in the beginning. Of course — it wipes the slate clean. It makes everything all right now. You appreciate that." Behemoth yawned. The young man turned, and came a step or two forward, both face and voice under complete control again. "I received a note from you this morning," he began briskly, "asking me to come in — " The girl's voice interrupted him. Standing beside the little typewriter-table, exactly where her caller had sur- prised her, she had watched with a mortifying dumbness the second meeting between the pleasure-dog and the little Doctor that was. But now pride sprang to her aid, stinging her into speech. For it was an unendurable thing that she should thus tamely surrender to him the mastery of her situation, and suffer her own fault to be glossed over so ingloriously. "Won't you let me tell you," she began hurriedly, "how sorry I am — how ashamed — that I misjudged — " "No! No! I beg you to stop. There is not the smallest occasion for anything of that sort — " "Don't you see my dreadful position? I suspect you, mis- judge you — wrong you at every step — and all the time you are doing a thing so fine — so generous and splendid — that I am humiliated — to — " Once again she saw that painful transformation in his face : a difficult dull-red flood sweeping over it, only to recede instantly, leaving him white from neck to brow. "What is the use of talking in this way?" he asked per- emptorily. "What is the good of it, I say? The matter is OUEED 419 over and done with. Everything is all right — his telling you wipes it all from the slate, just as I said. Don't you see that? Well, can't you dismiss the whole incident from your mind and forget that it ever happened?" " I will try — if that is what you wish." She turned away, utterly disappointed and disconcerted by his summary disposal of the burning topic over which she had planned such a long and satisfying discussion. He started to say something, checked himself, and said some- thing entirely different. "I have received your note," he began directly, "asking me to come in and see you about the matter of difference be- tween the estates. That is why I have called. I trust that this means that you are going to hp sensible and take your money." " In a way — yes. I will tell you — what I have thought." "Well, sit down to tell me, please. You look tired ; notwell at all. Not in the least. Take this comfortable chair." Obediently she sat down in Mr. Dayne's high-backed swivel-chair, which, when she leaned back, let her neat-shod little feet swing clear of the floor. The chair was a happy thought; it steadied her; so did his unexampled solicitous- ness, which showed, she thought, that her emotion had not escaped him. " I have decided that I would take it," said she, "with a — a — sort of condition." Sitting in the chair placed for Mr. Dayne's callers, the young man showed instant signs of disapprobation. " No, no ! You are big enough to accept your own without conditions." "Oh — you won't argue with me about that, will you? Perhaps it is unreasonable, but I could never be satisfied to take it — and spend it for myself. I could never have any pleasure in it — never feel that it was really mine. So," she hurried on, " I thought that it would be nice to take it — and give it away." "Give it away!" he echoed, astonished and displeased. 420 OUEED "Yes — give it to the State. I thought I should like to give it to — establish a reformatory." Their eyes met. Upon his candid face she could watch the subtler meanings of her idea slowly sinking into and taking hold of his consciousness. ' ' No — no !" came from him, explosively. ' ' No ! You must not think of such a thing." "Yes — I have quite made up my mind. When the idea came to me it was like an inspiration. It seemed to me the perfect use to make of this money. Don't you see? . . . And — " "No, I don't see," he said sharply. "Why will you per- sist in thinking that there is something peculiar and unclean about this money? — some imagined taint upon your title to it? Don't you understand that it is yours in precisely the same definite and honest way that the money this office pays you—" "Oh — surely it is all a question of feeling. And if I feel—" "It is a question of fact," said Mr. Surface. "Listen to me. Suppose your father had put this money away for you somewhere, so that you knew nothing about it, hidden it, say, in a secret drawer somewhere about your house" — did n't he know exactly the sort of places which fathers used to hide away money ? — " and that now, after all these years, you had suddenly found it, together with a note from him saying that it was for you. You follow me perfectly? Well? Would it ever occur to you to give that money to the State — for a reformatory ? " "Oh — perhaps not. How can I tell? But that case would — " "Would be exactly like this one," he finished for her erisply. "The sole difference is that it happens to be my father who hid the money away instead of yours." There was a silence. "I am sorry," said she, constrainedly, "that you take this — this view. I had hoped so much that you might agree QUEED 421 with me. Nevertheless, I think my mind is quite made up. I—" "Then why on earth have you gone through the formality of consulting me, only to tell me — " "Oh — because I thought it would be so nice if you would agree with me!" "But I do not agree with you," he said, looking at her with frowning steadiness. "I do not. Nobody on earth would agree with you. Have you talked with your friends about this mad proposal? Have you — " "None of them but you. I did not care to." The little speech affected him beyond all expectation; in full flight as he was, it stopped him dead. He lost first the thread of his argument; then his steadiness of eye and manner; and when he spoke, it was to follow up, not his own thought, but her implication, with those evidences of embar- rassment which he could never hide. "So we are friends again," he stated, in rather a strained voice. "If you are willing — to take me back." He sat silent, drumming a tattoo on his chair-arm with long, strong fingers; and when he resumed his argument, it was with an entire absence of his usual air of authority. "On every score, you ought to keep your money — to make yourself comfortable — to stop working — to bring yourself more pleasures, trips, whatever you want — all exactly as your father intended." "Oh! — don't argue with me, please ! I asked you not. I must either take it for that or not at all." "It — it is not my part," he said reluctantly, "to dic- tate what you shall do with your own. I cannot sympathize in the least with your — your mad proposal. Not in the least. However, I must assume that you know your own mind. If it is quite made up — " "Oh, it is! I have thought it all over so carefully — and with so much pleasure." He rose decisively. "Very well, I will go to my lawj^rs 422 QUEED at once — this morning. They will arrange it as you wish." "Oh — will you? How can I thank you? And oh," she added hastily, "there was — another point that I — I wished to speak to you about." He gazed down at her, looking so small and sorrowful-eyed in her great chair, and all at once his knees ran to water, and the terrible fear clutched at him that his manhood would not last him out of the room. This was the reason, perhaps, that his voice was the little Doctor's at its brusquest as he said : — "Well? What is it?" "The question," she said nervously, "of a — a name for this reformatory that I want to found. I have thought a great deal about that. It is a — large part of my idea. And I have decided that my reformatory shall be called — that is, that I should like to call it — the Henry G. Surface Home." He stared at her through a flash like a man stupefied ; and then, wheeling abruptly, walked away from her to the win- dows which overlooked the park. For some time he stood there, back determinedly toward her, staring with great fixity at nothing. But when he returned to her, she had never seen his face so stern. "You must be mad to suggest such a thing. Mad! Of course I shall not allow you to do it. I shall not give you the money for any such purpose." " But if it is mine, as you wrote? " said Sharlee, looking up at him from the back of her big chair. Her point manifestly was unanswerable. With charac- teristic swiftness, he abandoned it, and fell back to far stronger ground. " Yes, the money is yours," he said stormily. " But that is all. My father's name is mine." That silenced her, for the moment at least, and he swept rapidly on, " I do not in the least approve of your giving your money OUEED 423 to establish a foundation at all. That, however, is a matter with which, unfortunately, I have nothing to do. But with my father's name I have everything to do. I shall not per- mit you to — " "Surely — oh, surely, you will not refuse me so small a thing which would give me so much happiness." " Happiness? " He flung the word back at her impatiently, but his intention of demolishing it was suddenly checked by a flashing remembrance of Fifi's definition of it. "Will you kindly explain how you would get happiness from that?" "Oh — if you don't see, I am afraid I — could never explain — " " It is a display of just the same sort of unthinking Quix- otism which has led you hitherto to refuse to accept your own money. What you propose is utterly irrational in every way. Can you deny it? Can you defend your proposal by any reasonable argument? I cannot imagine how so — so mad an idea ever came into your mind." She sat still, her fingers playing with the frayed edges of Mr. Dayne's blotting-pad, and allowed the silence to enfold them once more. "Your foundation," he went on, with still further loss of motive power, "would — gain nothing by bearing the name of my father. He was not worthy. . . . No one knows that better than you. Will you tell me what impulse put it into your mind to — to do this?" " I — ^ had many reasons," said she, speaking with some difficulty. " I will tell you one. My father loved him once. I know he would like me to do something — to make ^the name honorable again." "That," he said, in a hard voice, "is beyond your power." She showed no disposition to contradict him, or even to maintain the conversation. Presently he went on : — "I cannot let you injure your foundation by — branding it with his notoriety, in an impulsive and — and fruitless generosity. For it would be fruitless. You, of all pe®ple. 424 OUEED must understand that the burden on the other side is — impossibly heavy. You know that, don't you?" She raised her head and looked at him. Again, her pride had been plucking at her heartstrings, burning her with the remembrance that he, when he gave her everything that a man could give, had done it in a man- ner perfect and without flaw. And now she, with her in- finitely smaller 'offering, sat tongue-tied and ineffectual, unable to give with a show of the purple, too poor-spirited even to yield him the truth for his truth which alone made the gift worth the offering. Her blood, her spirit, and all her inheritance rallied at the call of her pride. She looked at him, and made her gaze be steady: though this seemed to her the hardest thing ^she had ever done in her life. " I must not let you think that I — wanted to do this only for your father's sake. That would not be honest. Part of my pleasure in planning it — most of it, perhaps — was be- cause I — I should so much like to do something for your father's son." She rose, trying to give the movement a casual air, and went over to her little desk, pretending to busy herself straightening out the litter of papers upon it. From this safe distance, her back toward him, she forced herself to add: — "This reformatory will take the place of the one you — would have won for us. Don't you see? Half — my hap- piness in giving it is gone, unless you will lend me the name." Behind her the silence was impenetrable. She stood at her desk, methodically sorting papers which she did not see, and wildly guessing at the meaning of that look of turbulent consciousness which she had seen break startled into his eyes. More even than in their last meeting, she had found that the sight of his face, wonderfully changed yet even more wonderfully the same, deeply affected her to-day. Its new sadness and premature age moved her strangely; with a peculiar stab of compassion and pain she OUEED 425 had perceived for the first time the gray in the nondescript hair about his temples. For his face, she had seen that the smooth sheath of satisfied self-absorption, which had once overlain it like the hard vender on a table-top, had been scorched away as in a baptism by fire; from which all that was best in it had come out at once strengthened and chastened. And she thought that the shining quality [of honesty in his face must be such as to strike strangers on the street. And now, behind her on the office floor, she heard his footsteps, and in one breath was suddenly cold with the fear that her hour had come, and hot with the fear that it had not. Engrossed with her papers, she moved so as to keep her back toward him; but he, with a directness which would not flinch even in this untried emergency, deliberately in- truded himself between her and the table ; and so once more they stood face to face. "I don't understand you," he began, his manner at its quietest. "Why do you want to do this for me?" At this close range, she glanced once at him and instantly looked away. His face was as white as paper ; and when she saw that her heart first stopped beating, and then pounded off in a wild frightened paean. "I — cannot tell you — I don't know — exactly." ' ' What do you mean ? " She hardly recognized his voice; instinctively she began backing away. " I don't think I — can explain. You — rather terrify me this morning." "Are you in love with me?" he demanded in a terrible voice, beginning at the wrong end, as he would be sure to do. Finger at her lip, her blue eyes, bright with unshed tears, resting upon his in a gaze as direct as a child's, Sharlee nodded her head up and down. And that was all the hint required by clever Mr. Surface, the famous social scientist. He advanced somehow, and 426 OUEED took her in his arms. On the whole, it was rather surprising how satisfactorily he did it, considering that she was the first woman he had ever touched in all his days. So they stood through a time that might have been a minute and might have been an age, since all of them that mattered had soared away to the sunlit spaces where no time is. After awhile, driven by a strange fierce desire to see her face in the light of this new glory, he made a gentle effort to hold her off from him, but she clung to him, crying, "No, no! I don't want you to see me yet." After another interval of uncertain length, she said: — "All along my heart has cried out that you couldn't have done that, and hurt me so. You couldn't. I will never doubt my heart again. And you were so fine — so fine — to for- give me so easily." In the midst of his dizzying exaltation, he marveled at the ease with which she spoke her inmost feeling; he, the great apostle of reason and self-mastery, was much slower in re- covering lost voice and control. It was some time before he would trust himself to speak, and even then the voice that he used was not recognizable as his. "So you are willing to do as much for my father's son as to — to — take his name for your own." "No, this is something that I am doing for myself. Your father was not perfect, but he was the only father that ever had a son whose name I would take for mine." A silence. "We can keep my father's house," he said, in time, "for — for — us to live in. You must give up the office. And I will find light remunerative work, which will leave at least part of my time free for my book." She gave a little laugh that was half a sob. "Perhaps — you could persuade that wealthy old lady — to get out a second edition of her thesaurus I" "I wish I could, though!" "You talk just like my little Doctor," she gasped — "my — own little Doctor. ... I've got a little surprise for you OUEED 427 — about remunerative work," she went on, "only I can't tell you now, because it's a secret. Promise that you won't make me tell you." He promised. Suddenly, without knowing why, she began to cry, her cheek against his breast. "You've had a sad life, little Doctor — a sad life. But I am going to make it all up to you — if you will show me the way." Presently she became aware that her telephone was ring- ing, and ringing as though it had been at it for some time. "Oh bother! They won't let us have even a little minute together after all these years. I suppose you must let me go-" She turned from the desk with the most beautiful smile he had ever seen upon a face. "It's for you!" "For me?" he echoed like a man in a dream. "That is — very strange." Strange, indeed ! Outside, the dull world was wagging on as before, unaware that there had taken place in this en- chanted room the most momentous event in history. He took the receiver from her with a left hand which trembled, and with his untrained right somehow caught and imprisoned both of hers. "Stand right by me," he begged hurriedly. Now he hoisted the receiver in the general direction of his ear, and said in what he doubtless thought was quite a busi- nesslike manner: "Well?" "Mr. Queed? This is Mr. Hickok," said the incisive voice over the wire. "Well, what in the mischief are you doing up there?" " I 'm — I 'm — transacting some important business — with the Department," said Mr. Surface, and gave Sharlee's hands a desperate squeeze. "But my — " "Well, we're transacting some important business down here. Never should have found you but for Mr. Dayne's hap- pening along. Did you know that West had resigned? " 42« OUEED "No, has he? But I started — " " Peace to his ashes. De mortuis nil nisi bonum. The di- rectors are meeting now to elect his successor. Only one name has been mentioned. There's only one editor we'll hear of for the paper. Won't you come back to us, my boy?" The young man cleared his throat. "Come? I'd — think it a — a great honor — there 's nothing I 'd rather have. You are all too — too kind to me — I can't tell you — but—" "Oh, no buts! But us no buts now! I'll go tell them—" " No — wait," called the young man, hastily. " If I come, I don't come as Queed, you know. My name is Henry G. Surface. That may make a difference — " ' ' Come as Beelzebub ! ' ' said the old man, testily. ' ' We ' ve had enough of hiring a name for the Post. This time we 're after a man, and by the Lord, we've got one!" Henry Surface turned away from the telephone, strug- gling with less than his usual success to show an unmoved "You — know?" She nodded : in her blue-spar eyes, there was the look of a winged victory. "That was the little secret — don't you think it was a nice one? It is your magnificent boast come true. . . . And you don't even say ' I told you so '! " He looked past her out into the park. Over the budding trees, already bursting and spreading their fans of green, far off over the jagged stretch of roofs, his gaze sought the bat- tered gray Post building and the row of windows behind which he had so often sat and worked. A mist came before his eyes; the trees curveted and swam; and his visible world swung upside down and went out in a singing and spark- shot blackness. She came to his side again : in silence slipped her hand into his ; and following both his look and his thought, she felt hsr own eyes smart with a sudden bright dimness. OUEED 429 "This is the best city in the world," said Henry Surface. " The kindest people — the kindest people — " "Yes, little Doctor." He turned abruptly and caught her to him again ; and now, hearing even above the hammering of his own blood the wild fluttering of her heart against his, his tongue unlocked and he began to speak his heart. It was not speech as he had always known speech. In all his wonderful array of termin- ology there were no words fitted to this undreamed need ; he had to discover them somehow, by main strength make them up for himself; and they came out stammering, hard -wrung, bearing new upon their rough faces the mint-mark of his own heart. Perhaps she did not prize them any the less on that account. " I 'm glad that you love me that way — Henry. I must call you Henry now — must n't I, Henry?" "Do you know," she said, after a time, "I am — almost weakening about giving our money for a Home. Somehow, I 'd so like for you to have it, so that — " She felt a little shiver run through him. "No, no! I could not bear to touch it. We shall be fai happier — " "You could stop work, buy yourself comforts, pleasures, trips. It is a mad thing," she teased, "to give away money. . . . Oh, little Doctor — I can't breathe if you hold me — so tight." "About the name," he said presently, "I — dislike to op- pose you, but I cannot — I cannot — " "Well, I've decided to change it, Henry, in deference to your wishes." " I am extremely glad. I myself know a name — " " Instead of calling it the Henry G. Surface Home — " Suddenly she drew away from him, leaving behind both her hands for a keepsake, and raised to him a look so luminous and radiant that he felt himself awed before it, like one who with impious feet has blundered upon holy ground. 430 OUEED "I am going to call it the Henry G. Surface Junior Home. Do you know any name for a Home so pretty as that? " "No, no, I — can't let you—" But she cried him down passionately, saying: " Yes, that is our name now, and we are going to make it honorable." From his place beside the sociological bookcase — per- haps faunal naturalists can tell us why — the great pleasure- dog Behemoth, whose presence they had both forgotten, raised his leonine head and gave a sharp, joyous bark. CAMBRIDGE . MASSACHUSETTS U . S . A